Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n apostle_n bishop_n evangelist_n 4,208 5 10.0866 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A27363 The Notes of the church as laid down by Cardinal Bellarmin examined and confuted : with a table of contents. Sherlock, William, 1641?-1707. 1688 (1688) Wing B1823; ESTC R32229 267,792 461

There are 38 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n as_o lay_v down_o by_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n examine_v and_o confute_v with_o a_o table_n of_o the_o content_n imprimatur_fw-la apr._n 6._o 1687._o guil._n needham_n london_n print_v for_o richard_n chiswell_n at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n mdclxxxviii_o the_o several_a tract_n contain_v in_o this_o volume_n 1._o a_o brief_a discourse_n concern_v the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n with_o some_o reflection_n on_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n note_n 2._o a_o examination_n of_o note_n concern_v bellarmin_n first_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n 3._o his_o second_o note_n antiquity_n 4._o his_o third_z note_n duration_n 5._o his_o four_o note_n amplitude_n or_o multitude_n and_o variety_n of_o believer_n 6._o his_o fifth_z note_n the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n 7._o his_o sixth_z note_n agreement_n in_o doctrine_n with_o the_o primitive_a church_n 8._o his_o seven_o note_n union_n of_o the_o member_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o the_o head._n 9_o his_o eight_o note_n sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n 10._o his_o nine_o note_n efficacy_n of_o the_o doctrine_n 11._o his_o ten_o note_n holiness_n of_o life_n 12._o his_o eleven_o note_n the_o glory_n of_o miracle_n 13._o his_o twelve_o note_n the_o light_n of_o prophecy_n 14._o his_o thirteen_o note_n confession_n of_o adversary_n 15._o his_o fourteen_o note_n the_o unhappy_a end_n of_o the_o church_n enemy_n 16._o his_o fifteen_o note_n temporal_a felicity_n 17._o a_o vindication_n of_o the_o brief_a discourse_n concern_v the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n in_o answer_n to_o a_o late_a pamphlet_n entitle_v the_o use_n and_o great_a moment_n of_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n as_o deliver_v by_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n the_o notis_n ecclesiae_fw-la justify_v 18._o a_o defence_n of_o the_o confuter_n of_o bellarmin_n second_o note_n of_o the_o church_n antiquity_n against_o the_o cavil_n of_o the_o adviser_n 19_o a_o table_n of_o the_o content_n the_o content_n of_o the_o follow_a note_n the_o introduction_n to_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n the_o visibility_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n take_v away_o the_o necessity_n of_o find_v out_o note_n to_o distinguish_v it_o by_o especial_o of_o such_o note_n as_o be_v matter_n of_o dispute_v themselves_o p._n 3._o the_o use_n of_o note_n of_o find_v out_o a_o infallible_a church_n and_o these_o appropriate_v by_o the_o cardinal_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n only_o p._n 4._o what_o protestant_n intend_v in_o those_o note_n they_o give_v of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o what_o the_o papist_n by_o their_o note_n of_o a_o church_n p._n 5._o the_o protestant_a way_n of_o find_v out_o the_o church_n by_o the_o essential_a property_n of_o a_o true_a church_n p._n 6._o three_o thing_n object_v to_o this_o by_o the_o cardinal_n and_o answer_v return_v p._n 7_o 8_o 9_o 10_o 11_o 12._o the_o cardinal_n way_n consider_v and_o examine_v one_a to_o find_v out_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n before_o we_o know_v what_o a_o true_a church_n be_v p._n 13._o two_o inquiry_n in_o order_n of_o nature_n before_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n whether_o there_o be_v a_o true_a church_n or_o not_o and_o what_o it_o be_v ibid._n no_o note_n of_o these_o but_o such_o as_o they_o dare_v not_o give_v viz._n the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o every_o man_n be_v private_a judgement_n of_o the_o sense_n and_o interpretation_n of_o they_o p._n 14._o 2_o she_o give_v we_o note_n whereby_o to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n before_o we_o know_v what_o a_o particular_a church_n be_v p._n 15._o impossible_a to_o know_v what_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v before_o we_o know_v what_o a_o particular_a church_n be_v ibid._n no_o other_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n but_o what_o belong_v to_o every_o true_a particular_a church_n and_o that_o can_v be_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o church_n and_o what_o all_o church_n do_v agree_v in_o viz_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o worship_n of_o christ_n p._n 16._o the_o 6_o which_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o second_o and_o the_o 8_o be_v the_o chief_a if_o not_o the_o only_a note_n of_o this_o nature_n and_o here_o our_o claim_n be_v as_o good_a if_o not_o better_a than_o they_o ibid._n his_o 9th_o 10_o 11_o and_o 12_o not_o proper_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n any_o otherwise_o than_o as_o they_o be_v testimony_n of_o the_o common_a christianity_n which_o be_v profess_v by_o all_o true_a church_n ibid._n the_o 13_o 14_o 15_o no_o note_n at_o all_o because_o they_o be_v not_o always_o true_a ibid._n his_o 3d_o and_o four_o note_n be_v not_o note_n of_o a_o church_n but_o only_o god_n promise_n make_v to_o his_o church_n p._n 17._o his_o one_a note_n do_v not_o declare_v what_o a_o church_n be_v but_o in_o what_o communion_n it_o be_v and_o be_v no_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n unless_o it_o be_v frr_v prove_v that_o they_o be_v true_a church_n which_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o each_o other_o ibid._n his_o 5_o common_a to_o the_o greek_a and_o any_o other_o church_n who_o have_v bishop_n in_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n or_o apostolical_a bishop_n p._n 18._o the_o seven_o note_n serve_v to_o purpose_v the_o cardinal_n design_n and_o do_v his_o business_n without_o any_o other_o note_n ibid._n 3_o another_o mystery_n in_o form_v these_o note_n be_v to_o pick_v out_o of_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n one_o church_n which_o we_o must_v own_v for_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o reject_v all_o other_o as_o heretical_a or_o schismatical_a or_o vncatholick_a church_n who_o refuse_v obedience_n and_o subjection_n to_o this_o one_o catholic_n church_n p._n 19_o that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n and_o that_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v not_o signify_v all_o the_o particular_a true_a church_n but_o some_o one_o church_n which_o all_o other_o be_v bind_v to_o submit_v to_o and_o communicate_v with_o if_o they_o will_v be_v member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n this_o necessary_a to_o be_v prove_v before_o the_o cardinal_n have_v give_v we_o these_o note_n of_o a_o church_n p._n 20_o 21._o 4thly_a another_o design_n in_o make_v these_o note_n be_v to_o find_v out_o such_o a_o church_n on_o who_o authority_n we_o must_v rely_v for_o the_o whole_a christian_a faith_n even_o for_o the_o holy_a scripture_n themselves_o p._n 22._o but_o here_o we_o must_v first_o be_v satisfy_v that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v infallible_a this_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v but_o by_o scripture_n which_o a_o man_n must_v first_o believe_v before_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o he_o that_o there_o be_v a_o infallible_a church_n p._n 23._o the_o church_n be_v not_o the_o first_o object_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o religion_n since_o we_o ought_v to_o know_v and_o believe_v most_o of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n before_o we_o can_v know_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o church_n or_o no._n p._n 23_o 24._o the_o content_n of_o the_o first_o note_n catholic_n the_o sincere_a preach_v of_o the_o faith_n or_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v lay_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o only_a sure_a and_o infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n p._n 25._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n decline_v be_v examine_v by_o this_o rule_n p._n 26._o bellarmin_n argument_n for_o the_o name_n catholic_n be_v a_o undoubted_a true_a mark_n of_o a_o true_a church_n p._n 26._o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o cardinal_n argument_n expose_v in_o three_o particular_n i._o in_o what_o respect_n the_o name_n catholic_n be_v esteem_v by_o some_o of_o the_o father_n in_o their_o time_n a_o note_n of_o a_o catholic_n church_n and_o in_o what_o respect_n it_o will_v ever_o be_v a_o stand_a note_n of_o it_o p._n 27._o this_o show_v to_o be_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o therefore_o in_o their_o time_n be_v join_v with_o the_o word_n catholic_n p._n 28._o what_o the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o why_o call_v catholic_n ibid._n none_o in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o christianity_n go_v by_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n but_o those_o who_o profess_v the_o true_a catholic_n faith._n p._n 29._o ii_o no_o argument_n can_v be_v draw_v from_o the_o bare_a name_n of_o catholic_n to_o prove_v a_o church_n to_o be_v catholic_n p._n 29._o i._o the_o christian_a church_n be_v not_o know_v by_o the_o name_n catholic_n at_o the_o beginning_n though_o of_o a_o ancient_a and_o early_a date_n and_o therefore_o no_o essential_a note_n of_o it_o p._n 30._o 2._o name_n be_v oft_o time_n arbitrary_a and_o at_o random_n and_o false_o impose_v on_o thing_n and_o therefore_o nothing_o can_v be_v conclude_v from_o they_o ibid._n 3._o name_n be_v oft_o time_n impose_v on_o
visible_a p._n 63_o 64._o rome_n not_o always_o the_o principal_a seat_n of_o the_o church_n p._n 63._o avignon_n be_v for_o 70_o year_n where_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o whole_a court_n reside_v ibid._n several_a pope_n heretic_n p._n 64._o two_o pope_n at_o once_o contend_v for_o the_o chair_n and_o this_o for_o above_o 40_o year_n together_o and_o at_o one_o time_n 3_o pope_n p._n 64._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n compare_v with_o itself_o in_o reference_n to_o several_a doctrine_n p._n 65._o what_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o hold_v and_o what_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v hold_v ibid._n her_o be_v the_o mother-church_n and_o the_o pope_n be_v christ_n vicar_n ibid._n concern_v the_o apocryphal_a book_n ibid._n scripture_n and_o tradition_n p._n 66._o scripture_n in_o unknown_a tongue_n ibid._n merit_n p._n 67._o indulgence_n ibid._n purgatory_n p._n 68_o prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n ibid._n pray_v to_o saint_n p._n 68_o 69._o image-worship_n p._n 69._o sacrament_n the_o number_n of_o they_o ibid._n transubstantiation_n p._n 70._o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n ibid._n solitary_n mass_n p._n 70_o 71._o auricular_a confession_n p._n 71._o extreme_a unction_n ibid._n priest_n marriage_n ibid._n in_o all_o these_o particular_n room_n be_v not_o now_o what_o it_o have_v be_v the_o four_o note_n amplitude_n or_o multitude_n and_o variety_n of_o believer_n the_o scripture_n first_o give_v we_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o church_n p._n 73._o a_o true_a christian_a church_n profess_v the_o true_a christian_n faith._n p._n 74._o instead_o of_o this_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v invent_v several_a note_n and_o character_n of_o a_o church_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v meet_v with_o or_o be_v not_o plain_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n ibid._n of_o which_o this_o amplitude_n or_o multitude_n etc._n etc._n be_v one_o ibid._n what_o bellarmine_n understand_v by_o this_o note_n p._n 75._o in_o answer_n to_o he_o i._o it_o be_v show_v this_o can_v be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n ibid._n 1_o whether_o you_o consider_v the_o member_n thereof_o under_o either_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o great_a multitude_n or_o 2._o a_o great_a multitude_n of_o believer_n ibid._n satan_n kingdom_n more_o numerous_a than_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ._n ibid._n the_o worshipper_n of_o mahomet_n exceed_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n true_a church_n in_o number_n since_o the_o romanist_n make_v themselves_o the_o only_a catholic_n p._n 76._o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n not_o to_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n by_o this_o note_n ibid._n this_o note_n therefore_o no_o true_a character_n of_o a_o church_n p._n 77._o the_o several_a place_n of_o scripture_n whence_o bellarmine_n pretend_v he_o fetch_v this_o note_n of_o he_o ibid._n this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n that_o it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o the_o variable_a state_n and_o condition_n of_o it_o p._n 78._o this_o acknowledge_v by_o the_o cardinal_n himself_o in_o his_o explication_n of_o this_o note_n ibid._n the_o present_a state_n of_o the_o church_n not_o to_o be_v compare_v with_o what_o it_o shall_v be_v before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n p._n 79._o many_o plain_a prophecy_n bring_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o ibid._n the_o cardinal_n citation_n of_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n for_o the_o confirm_v this_o note_n consider_v p._n 80_o 81._o ii_o suppose_v this_o to_o be_v a_o true_a note_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n it_o do_v not_o advantage_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o that_o her_o pretention_n of_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_n church_n ibid._n 82_o to_o 85._o iii_o suppose_v again_o this_o note_n to_o be_v true_a it_o do_v the_o reform_a church_n a_o very_a great_a service_n in_o demonstrate_v they_o to_o be_v true_a part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n p._n 85._o this_o demonstrate_v by_o two_o argument_n p._n 86_o 87._o 1._o that_o in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o christianity_n the_o catholic_n church_n then_o be_v more_o we_o than_o now_o it_o be_v the_o romanist_n p._n 86._o that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a agreement_n between_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o present_a church_n of_o england_n ibid._n this_o be_v evident_a by_o compare_v the_o doctrine_n and_o worship_n of_o each_o together_o ibid._n 2._o that_o upon_o computation_n the_o church_n subject_n to_o the_o roman_a see_v exceed_v not_o the_o reform_a church_n in_o amplitude_n or_o multitude_n of_o member_n p._n 87_o to_o 91._o the_o conclusion_n p._n 92._o the_o five_o note_n succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o examination_n of_o this_o note_n three_o thing_n be_v inquire_v into_o i._o how_o far_o this_o note_n may_v be_v necessary_a to_o any_o church_n p._n 94._o true_a and_o lawful_a pastor_n necessary_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o pastoral_a power_n original_o from_o christ_n ibid._n power_n of_o ordination_n entrust_v with_o bishop_n the_o chief_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o ordinary_a successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n p._n 94_o 95._o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o bishop_n and_o its_o succession_n not_o interrupt_v in_o the_o reformation_n ibid._n 1._o obs_n though_o succession_n of_o bishop_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o complete_a constitution_n of_o a_o church_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v doubt_v whether_o it_o be_v indispensable_a to_o the_o very_o be_v of_o it_o so_o as_o to_o unchurch_n every_o place_n that_o want_v these_o 2._o obs_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a for_o every_o church_n which_o firm_o presume_v upon_o this_o lawful_a and_o orderly_a succession_n even_o from_o the_o apostle_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o produce_v the_o record_n of_o its_o conveyance_n through_o every_o age_n and_o in_o every_o single_a person_n by_o who_o it_o have_v past_a p._n 95._o the_o ancient_n content_v themselves_o in_o deliver_v down_o to_o we_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o great_a see_v and_o mother-city_n as_o of_o rome_n alexandria_n antioch_n jerusalem_n etc._n etc._n ibid._n 3._o obs_n some_o irregularity_n and_o uncanonical_a proceed_n in_o time_n of_o great_a schism_n or_o public_a disturbance_n have_v be_v interpret_v for_o no_o interruption_n of_o this_o authentical_a succession_n p._n 97._o ii_o how_o far_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n may_v be_v grant_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n p._n 98._o little_o leave_v upon_o record_n of_o many_o of_o the_o first_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n except_v their_o bare_a name_n ibid._n if_o heresy_n break_v the_o succession_n this_o be_v chargeable_a upon_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n p._n 99_o if_o schismatical_a intrusion_n can_v dissolve_v the_o order_n of_o succession_n this_o chargeable_a likewise_o on_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o church_n viz._n felix_n the_o 2._o and_o vigilius_n ibid._n 1._o the_o case_n of_o the_o roman_a succession_n extreme_o change_v since_o the_o first_o time_n p._n 101._o no_o supremacy_n to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o more_o than_o the_o first_o 500_o year_n p._n 101_o 102._o 2._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n not_o very_o favourable_a to_o the_o order_n of_o bishop_n ibid._n the_o divine_a right_n of_o episcopacy_n dispute_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n ibid._n 3._o their_o catechism_n make_v this_o no_o distinct_a order_n but_o only_o a_o different_a degree_n of_o the_o same_o priesthood_n p._n 103._o iii_o how_o insufficient_a a_o proof_n this_o will_v afford_v they_o of_o any_o great_a advantage_n ibid._n 1._o succession_n be_v no_o sufficient_a evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o any_o church_n p._n 104_o 105._o 2._o a_o unintterrupted_a succession_n of_o bishop_n be_v no_o warrantable_a ground_n of_o the_o claim_n of_o superiority_n over_o another_o church_n which_o have_v not_o so_o clear_a evidence_n thereof_o p._n 105_o 106._o the_o cardinal_n testimony_n out_o of_o st._n augustine_n irenaeus_n tertullian_n and_o epiphanius_n examine_v p._n 107_o 108._o his_o inference_n from_o these_o citation_n about_o succession_n consider_v p._n 109_o 110._o the_o conclusion_n the_o six_o note_n agreement_n in_o doctrine_n with_o the_o primitive_a church_n this_o be_v acknowledge_v a_o true_a mark_n of_o a_o church_n p._n 113._o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v to_o be_v lay_v aside_o till_o it_o be_v first_o know_v whether_o it_o agree_v with_o the_o primitive_a church_n or_o not_o p._n 114._o the_o true_a church_n only_o to_o be_v discover_v by_o the_o true_a faith._n p._n 115._o those_o matter_n of_o faith_n in_o controversy_n betwixt_o we_o be_v to_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n p._n 116._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n wave_v particular_a controversy_n that_o may_v be_v make_v plain_a and_o evident_a to_o most_o capacity_n delight_n rather_o to_o run_v out_o into_o general_a controversy_n
of_o christ_n now_o so_o far_o as_o bellarmin_n note_n belong_v to_o every_o true_a particular_a church_n so_o far_o we_o allow_v they_o and_o let_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n make_v the_o best_a of_o they_o she_o can_v for_o we_o doubt_v not_o to_o make_v our_o claim_n to_o they_o as_o good_a and_o much_o better_a than_o she_o but_o he_o have_v name_v very_o few_o such_o the_o 6_o the_o agreement_n and_o consent_n in_o doctrine_n with_o the_o ancient_n and_o apostolic_a church_n and_o the_o 8_o the_o holiness_n of_o its_o doctrine_n be_v the_o chief_n if_o not_o the_o only_a note_n of_o this_o nature_n and_o these_o we_o will_v stand_v and_o fall_v by_o many_o of_o his_o other_o be_v not_o proper_o the_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n any_o otherwise_o than_o as_o they_o be_v testimony_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o common_a christianity_n which_o be_v profess_v by_o all_o true_a church_n and_o if_o they_o be_v note_n of_o the_o church_n so_o every_o true_a particular_a church_n have_v a_o share_n in_o they_o such_o as_o his_o 9th_o the_o efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n the_o 10_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o life_n of_o the_o first_o author_n and_o father_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o i_o suppose_v the_o holiness_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n give_v testimony_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o common_a christianity_n and_o therefore_o to_o all_o church_n who_o profess_v the_o common_a faith_n once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n the_o 11_o the_o glory_n of_o miracle_n which_o also_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o i_o hope_v a_o little_a better_o than_o popish_a miracle_n do_v transubstantiation_n the_o 12_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n which_o as_o far_o as_o it_o be_v a_o good_a note_n belong_v to_o the_o religion_n not_o to_o the_o church_n other_o note_n he_o assign_v which_o i_o doubt_v will_v prove_v no_o note_n at_o all_o as_o 13_o 14_o 15._o because_o they_o be_v not_o always_o true_a and_o at_o best_a uncertain_a his_o three_o and_o four_o note_n be_v not_o note_n of_o a_o church_n but_o god_n promise_v make_v to_o his_o church_n as_o of_o a_o long_a duration_n that_o it_o shall_v never_o fail_v and_o amplitude_n or_o extent_n and_o multitude_n of_o believer_n these_o promise_v we_o believe_v god_n will_v fulfil_v to_o his_o church_n but_o they_o can_v be_v no_o note_n which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o the_o first_o of_o these_o can_v never_o be_v a_o note_n till_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n that_o church_n which_o shall_v never_o be_v destroy_v be_v the_o true_a church_n but_o a_o bare_a long_a continuance_n be_v no_o mark_n of_o a_o true_a church_n for_o a_o apostatical_a church_n may_v continue_v by_o the_o patience_n and_o forbearance_n of_o god_n many_o hundred_o year_n and_o be_v destroy_v at_o last_o and_o then_o this_o argument_n of_o a_o long_a duration_n be_v confute_v and_o as_o for_o amplitude_n and_o extent_n that_o be_v not_o to_o distinguish_v one_o christian_a church_n from_o another_o that_o the_o most_o numerous_a church_n shall_v be_v the_o true_a but_o to_o distinguish_v the_o christian_a church_n from_o all_o other_o religion_n and_o then_o i_o doubt_v this_o prophecy_n have_v not_o receive_v its_o just_a accomplishment_n yet_o for_o though_o we_o take_v in_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n and_o not_o exclude_v the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v yet_o they_o bear_v but_o a_o small_a proportion_n to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world._n and_o now_o there_o be_v but_o three_o of_o his_o fifteen_o note_n of_o the_o church_n leave_v the_o first_o concern_v the_o name_n catholic_n which_o make_v every_o church_n a_o catholic_n church_n which_o will_v call_v itself_o so_o tho_o catholic_n do_v not_o declare_v what_o a_o church_n be_v but_o in_o what_o communion_n it_o be_v and_o be_v no_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n unless_o it_o be_v first_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v true_a church_n which_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o each_o other_o for_o if_o three_o part_n in_o four_o of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n be_v very_o corrupt_a and_o degenerate_a in_o faith_n and_o worship_n and_o be_v in_o one_o communion_n this_o will_v be_v the_o most_o catholic_n communion_n as_o catholic_n signify_v the_o most_o general_a and_o universal_a but_o yet_o the_o four_o part_n which_o be_v sincere_a will_v be_v the_o best_a and_o true_a church_n and_o the_o catholic_n church_n as_o that_o signify_v the_o communion_n of_o all_o orthodox_n and_o pure_a church_n his_o first_o note_n be_v the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o the_o apostle_n till_o now_o this_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o greek_a church_n be_v as_o good_a a_o note_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o any_o church_n which_o have_v be_v late_a plant_v who_o have_v bishop_n in_o succession_n from_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o apostolical_a bishop_n by_o this_o note_n be_v as_o good_a church_n as_o they_o so_o that_o this_o be_v a_o note_n common_a to_o all_o true_a church_n and_o therefore_o can_v do_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n no_o service_n his_o seven_o note_n indeed_o be_v home_n to_o his_o purpose_n that_o that_o be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n which_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o its_o head._n if_o he_o can_v prove_v this_o it_o must_v do_v his_o business_n without_o any_o other_o note_n but_o that_o will_v be_v examine_v hereafter_o but_o it_o be_v like_o the_o confidence_n of_o a_o jesuit_n to_o make_v that_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a subject_n of_o the_o dispute_n the_o sum_n be_v this_o there_o can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n but_o what_o belong_v to_o all_o true_a church_n for_o though_o there_o be_v but_o one_o catholic_n church_n yet_o there_o be_v a_o great_a many_o true_a particular_a church_n which_o make_v up_o this_o catholic_n church_n as_o homogeneal_a part_n which_o have_v all_o the_o same_o nature_n but_o now_o very_a few_o of_o the_o cardinal_n note_n belong_v to_o all_o true_a church_n and_o those_o which_o do_v so_o signify_v nothing_o to_o his_o purpose_n because_o they_o be_v common_a to_o more_o church_n than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o as_o for_o the_o catholic_n church_n that_o be_v know_v only_o by_o particular_a church_n for_o it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o union_n of_o all_o true_a church_n in_o faith_n and_o worship_n and_o one_o communion_n as_o far_o as_o distinct_a church_n at_o a_o great_a distance_n from_o each_o other_o be_v capable_a of_o it_o and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n to_o know_v which_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n but_o by_o know_v all_o the_o true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n which_o either_o be_v in_o actual_a communion_n with_o one_o another_o or_o be_v in_o a_o disposition_n for_o it_o whenever_o occasion_n be_v offer_v for_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o all_o true_a christian_a church_n all_o the_o world_n over_o shall_v ever_o join_v in_o any_o visible_a and_o external_a act_n of_o communion_n and_o therefore_o though_o we_o know_v and_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o catholic_n church_n because_o we_o be_v assure_v that_o all_o true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n be_v but_o one_o church_n the_o one_o body_n and_o spouse_n of_o christ_n yet_o it_o be_v next_o to_o impossible_a to_o know_v all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n without_o which_o we_o can_v know_v the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n because_o we_o can_v know_v all_o the_o particular_a true_a church_n all_o the_o world_n over_o nor_o indeed_o be_v there_o any_o need_n we_o shall_v for_o we_o may_v certain_o know_v which_o be_v a_o true_o catholic_n church_n without_o know_v the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n for_o every_o church_n which_o profess_v the_o true_a catholic_n faith_n and_o impose_v only_a catholic_n term_n of_o communion_n and_o be_v ready_a out_o of_o the_o principle_n of_o brotherly_a love_n and_o charity_n that_o cement_n of_o catholic_n communion_n to_o communicate_v with_o all_o church_n and_o to_o receive_v all_o church_n to_o her_o communion_n upon_o these_o term_n be_v a_o true_o catholic_n church_n which_o show_v how_o ridiculous_a it_o be_v to_o make_v the_o catholic_n church_n our_o first_o inquiry_n and_o to_o pretend_v to_o give_v note_n to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n by_o before_o we_o know_v what_o a_o true_a particular_a church_n be_v but_o the_o mystery_n of_o this_o will_v appear_v more_o in_o what_o follow_v 3_o for_o another_o mystery_n of_o find_v the_o true_a church_n by_o note_n be_v to_o pick_v out_o of_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n
the_o extraordinary_a direction_n and_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n indict_v and_o commend_v to_o the_o care_n and_o keep_n of_o all_o the_o church_n plant_v by_o they_o as_o a_o sure_a unerring_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n call_v catholic_n both_o as_o it_o contain_v all_o thing_n in_o it_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v preach_v and_o publish_v in_o all_o time_n and_o successive_o in_o all_o place_n according_a to_o vincent_n lirin_fw-mi rule_n quod_fw-la semper_fw-la quod_fw-la ubique_fw-la quod_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la creditum_fw-la est_fw-la it_o set_v out_o at_o jerusalem_n but_o be_v not_o to_o stop_v there_o but_o from_o thence_o to_o spread_v itself_o into_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world._n the_o apostle_n be_v first_o to_o preach_v to_o the_o lose_a sheep_n of_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n but_o not_o to_o they_o only_o go_v teach_v all_o nation_n be_v our_o saviour_n commission_n to_o the_o apostle_n and_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o heathen_a for_o thy_o inheritance_n and_o &c._n &c._n be_v god_n promise_n to_o our_o saviour_n the_o christian_a church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v confine_v within_o the_o limit_n of_o one_o nation_n like_o that_o of_o the_o jew_n within_o the_o small_a territory_n of_o judaea_n but_o to_o be_v make_v up_o of_o every_o kindred_n and_o tongue_n and_o people_n and_o nation_n now_o in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o christianity_n before_o the_o main_a body_n of_o the_o church_n be_v divide_v only_o some_o few_o mislead_v and_o seduce_v people_n separate_v from_o it_o it_o be_v general_o true_a that_o they_o that_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_n profess_v the_o true_a catholic_n faith_n and_o those_o that_o be_v call_v after_o the_o name_n of_o particular_a man_n have_v deprave_v and_o corrupt_v it_o the_o very_a name_n catholic_n become_v a_o distinguish_a note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n and_o to_o be_v call_v after_o the_o name_n of_o the_o author_n of_o any_o sect_n the_o mark_n of_o a_o heretical_a and_o scismatical_a one_o but_o yet_o this_o be_v not_o so_o much_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o bare_a name_n as_o for_o the_o thing_n the_o tenet_n and_o doctrine_n signify_v by_o they_o in_o this_o sense_n be_v all_o those_o father_n to_o be_v understand_v quote_v by_o bellarmine_n and_o other_o who_o seem_v to_o lay_v any_o stress_n upon_o the_o name_n it_o be_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_n faith_n that_o in_o those_o time_n do_v for_o the_o most_o part_n if_o not_o every_o where_o accompany_v and_o go_v along_o with_o the_o name_n thus_o when_o st._n cyril_n of_o jerusalem_n advise_v his_o catechuman_n when_o they_o shall_v go_v into_o any_o city_n catech._n cap._n 18._o catech._n to_o inquire_v for_o the_o catholic_n church_n he_o give_v this_o reason_n for_o it_o because_o there_o the_o true_a catholic_n faith_n be_v teach_v and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n add_v the_o church_n be_v therefore_o call_v catholic_n because_o it_o teach_v all_o those_o truth_n all_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o know_v in_o order_n to_o salvation_n and_o upon_o the_o same_o account_n pacianus_n not_o unfit_o say_v christian_n be_v my_o name_n and_o catholic_n my_o surname_n cath._n epist_n ad_fw-la sym._n pron_z de_fw-fr nom_fw-fr cath._n by_o the_o one_o i_o be_o distinguish_v from_o heathen_n by_o the_o other_o from_o heretic_n and_o scismatic_o because_o in_o that_o age_n few_o or_o none_o go_v by_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n but_o those_o that_o be_v so_o indeed_o and_o profess_v the_o true_a catholic_n faith._n and_o as_o this_o be_v a_o true_a account_n of_o the_o original_a of_o the_o name_n catholic_n and_o the_o weight_n that_o be_v lay_v upon_o it_o in_o those_o early_a time_n so_o will_v the_o name_n ever_o continue_v to_o be_v a_o sure_a unerring_a note_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n whilst_o it_o be_v inseparable_o conjoin_v with_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n where_o this_o be_v teach_v and_o profess_v there_o be_v a_o true_a church_n where_o this_o fail_v in_o part_n or_o in_o whole_a the_o church_n decay_v or_o be_v lose_v ii_o no_o argument_n can_v be_v draw_v from_o the_o bare_a name_n of_o catholic_n to_o prove_v a_o church_n to_o be_v catholic_n this_o be_v so_o clear_a and_o evident_a in_o itself_o that_o it_o neither_o need_v nor_o be_v scarce_o capable_a of_o a_o proof_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v call_v catholic_n therefore_o she_o be_v catholic_n the_o papist_n be_v call_v catholic_n therefore_o they_o be_v catholic_n this_o be_v such_o a_o way_n of_o reason_v that_o every_o man_n must_v be_v ashamed_a to_o own_o but_o those_o who_o have_v the_o confidence_n to_o say_v any_o thing_n when_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o say_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o purpose_n for_o 1._o the_o christian_a church_n be_v not_o know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n at_o the_o beginning_n and_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v no_o essential_a note_n of_o it_o we_o find_v no_o mention_n of_o this_o name_n in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n we_o read_v that_o the_o disciple_n be_v call_v christian_n at_o antioch_n but_o the_o name_n catholic_n principal_o respect_v the_o diffusive_a nature_n of_o the_o church_n the_o church_n can_v not_o proper_o be_v so_o call_v till_o the_o christian_a faith_n have_v be_v more_o general_o and_o universal_o preach_v in_o the_o world_n therefore_o pacianus_n in_o the_o forequote_v place_n confess_v that_o the_o name_n catholic_n be_v not_o use_v in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o from_o thence_o some_o have_v conclude_v that_o the_o creed_n which_o go_v under_o the_o apostle_n name_v have_v this_o denomination_n of_o the_o church_n insert_v in_o it_o catholic_n church_n be_v not_o compose_v by_o they_o but_o by_o some_o holy_a bishop_n of_o a_o late_a stand_n in_o the_o church_n yet_o must_v it_o be_v confess_v that_o the_o name_n be_v very_o ancient_a and_o of_o a_o early_a date_n it_o be_v find_v in_o the_o oriental_a creed_n particular_o those_o of_o jerusalem_n and_o alexandria_n and_o in_o the_o inscription_n of_o st._n james_n st._n peter_n st._n john_n and_o st._n jude_n epistle_n which_o be_v all_o style_v general_n or_o catholic_n epistle_n 2._o name_n be_v oftentimes_o arbitrary_o and_o at_o random_n and_o false_o impose_v on_o thing_n and_o therefore_o nothing_o can_v be_v conclude_v from_o they_o the_o church_n of_o sardis_n have_v a_o name_n to_o live_v but_o be_v dead_a the_o church_n of_o laodicea_n glory_v that_o she_o be_v rich_a but_o be_v poor_a many_o on_o earth_n be_v call_v god_n who_o be_v but_o mortal_a man_n simon_n magus_n be_v call_v the_o great_a power_n of_o god_n but_o be_v a_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n mahomet_n a_o great_a prophet_n but_o be_v a_o impostor_n diana_n the_o great_a goddess_n of_o the_o ephesian_n but_o be_v a_o idol_n our_o bless_a saviour_n foretell_v that_o many_o shall_v come_v in_o his_o name_n each_o say_n i_o be_o christ_n but_o be_v deceiver_n thus_o you_o see_v thing_n and_o person_n be_v not_o always_o as_o they_o be_v call_v nor_o do_v i_o believe_v the_o papist_n be_v willing_a that_o their_o church_n shall_v be_v think_v in_o reality_n to_o be_v according_a to_o the_o signification_n of_o some_o name_n that_o be_v too_o liberal_o bestow_v upon_o she_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n call_v himself_o christ_n vicar_n but_o other_o antichrist_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n style_v herself_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o other_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n i_o do_v as_o little_o justify_v the_o fasten_n such_o odious_a name_n upon_o they_o as_o approve_v their_o arrogate_a to_o themselves_o the_o other_o glorious_a title_n yet_o this_o i_o be_o pretty_a well_o assure_v of_o that_o a_o man_n of_o ordinary_a ability_n may_v say_v as_o much_o to_o prove_v the_o pope_n antichrist_n and_o the_o romish_a church_n a_o harlot_n as_o the_o whole_a college_n can_v to_o justify_v the_o pretence_n of_o the_o one_o to_o be_v christ_n vicar_n or_o of_o the_o other_o to_o be_v his_o undefiled_a spouse_n 3._o name_n be_v oftentimes_o impose_v on_o thing_n and_o so_o use_v as_o mark_n of_o distinction_n only_o without_o any_o far_a design_n of_o represent_v their_o nature_n and_o quality_n by_o they_o thus_o we_o call_v the_o romanist_n catholic_n not_o that_o we_o think_v they_o be_v true_o so_o but_o in_o compliment_n or_o irony_n in_o compliance_n with_o common_a use_n or_o by_o way_n of_o discrimination_n from_o other_o christian_n and_o in_o the_o same_o respect_n it_o may_v be_v suppose_v that_o they_o call_v we_o the_o reform_a and_o if_o they_o think_v this_o be_v a_o good_a argument_n to_o prove_v they_o catholic_n we_o have_v the_o same_o and_o it_o will_v hold_v as_o strong_a to_o prove_v we_o
seven_o sacrament_n true_o and_o proper_o so_o and_o whosoever_o say_v there_o be_v more_o or_o few_o institute_v by_o christ_n be_v accurse_v trid._n sess_n 7._o can._n 1._o transubstantiation_n 13._o bread_n and_o wine_n after_o consecration_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n without_o change_v the_o species_n conc._n trid._n communion_n in_o one_o kind_n 14._o the_o people_n be_v forbid_v to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n in_o both_o kind_n trid._n sess_n 21._o c._n 1._o solitary_n mass_n 15._o solitary_n mass_n wherein_o the_o priest_n communicate_v alone_o be_v approve_v and_o commend_v and_o whosoever_o say_v they_o be_v unlawful_a and_o to_o be_v abrogate_a be_v accurse_v trid._n sess_n 22._o can._n 8._o auricular_a confession_n 16._o without_o particular_a confession_n of_o sin_n to_o a_o priest_n be_v neither_o forgiveness_n nor_o salvation_n to_o be_v obtain_v trid._n sess_n 14._o c._n 5._o can._n 6_o 7._o extreme_a unction_n 17._o extreme_a unction_n be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o to_o be_v administer_v when_o person_n be_v in_o imminent_a danger_n and_o last_o of_o all_o to_o be_v apply_v trid._n sess_n 14._o c._n 13._o priest_n marriage_n 18._o those_o that_o be_v in_o order_n may_v not_o marry_o and_o those_o that_o be_v marry_v may_v not_o be_v admit_v to_o order_n conc._n late_a 1._o can._n 21._o &_o late_a 2._o can._n 6._o what_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v hold_v 1._o before_o the_o time_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n little_a regard_n be_v have_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n so_o pope_n pius_n 2._o epist_n p._n 802._o and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n call_v other_o apostolical_a and_o sister-churche_n 2._o for_o one_o bishop_n to_o set_v himself_o over_o the_o rest_n and_o to_o have_v all_o the_o rest_n in_o subjection_n to_o he_o be_v the_o pride_n lucifer_n and_o the_o fore-running_a of_o antichrist_n pope_n gregor_n 1._o epist_n 36._o 3._o st._n jerom_n who_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n say_v that_o though_o tobias_n judith_n and_o maccabee_n etc._n etc._n be_v read_v yet_o they_o be_v not_o receive_v as_o canonical_a scripture_n prologue_n proverb_n and_o pope_n gregory_n 1_o quote_v the_o maccabee_n excuse_n himself_o for_o produce_v a_o testimony_n out_o of_o a_o book_n not_o canonical_a we_o do_v not_o amiss_o etc._n etc._n moral_a in_o job_n l._n 19_o c._n 13._o 4._o gregory_n 1._o say_v all_o thing_n which_o edify_v and_o instruct_v be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o from_o thence_o the_o teacher_n may_v present_o teach_v whatsoever_o be_v needful_a in_o ezek._n hom._n l._n 1._o c._n 8._o de_fw-fr cur._n past_n l._n 2._o c._n 11._o 5._o pope_n gregory_n the_o 9th_o an._n 1227._o declare_v the_o not_o know_v the_o scripture_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o truth_n itself_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o error_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v expedient_a for_o all_o man_n to_o read_v or_o hear_v they_o epist_n ad_fw-la germ._n archiep_n constant_n apud_fw-la m._n paris_n hen._n 3._o 6._o gregory_n 1._o say_v that_o the_o best_a of_o man_n will_v find_v no_o merit_n in_o their_o best_a action_n and_o that_o if_o he_o shall_v attain_v to_o the_o high_a virtue_n he_o shall_v obtain_v eternal_a life_n not_o by_o merit_n but_o by_o pardon_n moral_a l._n 9_o c._n 11._o and_o elsewhere_o he_o say_v i_o pray_v to_o be_v save_v not_o trust_v to_o my_o merit_n but_o presume_v to_o obtain_v that_o by_o thy_o mercy_n alone_o which_o i_o hope_v not_o for_o by_o my_o merit_n in_o 1_o psal_n poenit_fw-la 7._o fisher_n bp_o of_o rochester_n in_o hen._n 8th_n time_n say_v the_o use_n of_o indulgence_n seem_v to_o be_v late_o in_o the_o church_n and_o upon_o the_o recital_n of_o this_o testimony_n polydore_n virgil_n add_v which_o be_v thing_n of_o so_o great_a moment_n you_o may_v expect_v they_o more_o certain_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n de_fw-fr invent._n l._n 8._o c._n 1._o cardinal_n cajetan_n say_v there_o be_v no_o authority_n of_o scripture_n or_o ancient_a father_n greek_n or_o latin_a that_o bring_v they_o to_o our_o knowledge_n opusc_n 15._o c._n 1._o 8._o bp._n fisher_n say_v there_o be_v none_o or_o very_o rare_a mention_n of_o purgatory_n in_o the_o ancient_a father_n roff._n contr_n luther_n art._n 18._o and_o pope_n gregory_n 1._o say_v that_o at_o the_o time_n of_o death_n either_o the_o good_a or_o evil_a spirit_n seize_v upon_o the_o soul_n and_o keep_v it_o for_o ever_o with_o it_o without_o any_o change_n moral_a in_o job_n l._n 8._o c._n 8._o vid._n vindication_n of_o the_o answer_n to_o some_o late_a paper_n pag._n 76._o 9_o bellarmine_n acknowledge_v that_o long_o after_o the_o apostle_n both_o in_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a church_n the_o people_n be_v wont_a to_o answer_v in_o divine_a office_n de_fw-fr verb._n l._n 2._o cap._n 16._o 16._o sed_fw-la neque_fw-la vid._n discourse_v concern_v celebration_n of_o divine_a service_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n p._n 46_o 47_o 48._o 10._o irenaeus_n bp_o of_o lion_n say_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o church_n do_v nothing_o by_o invocation_n of_o angel_n but_o direct_v her_o prayer_n to_o god_n which_o have_v make_v all_o and_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o it_o seem_v not_o to_o have_v be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o time_n of_o lombard_n and_o scotus_n as_o it_o be_v now_o the_o one_o of_o which_o say_v it_o be_v not_o incredible_a the_o saint_n do_v hear_v what_o we_o say_v and_o the_o latter_a it_o be_v probable_a god_n do_v reveal_v our_o prayer_n lomb._n sent._n lib._n 4._o dist_n 45._o scot._n in_o 4_o dist_n q._n 45._o 11._o pope_n gregory_n i_o after_o he_o have_v allow_v image_n in_o temple_n for_o information_n of_o the_o ignorant_a do_v profess_o forbid_v the_o worship_n of_o they_o lib._n 7._o epist_n 109._o ad_fw-la serenum_fw-la &_o registr_n epist_n l._n 9_o ep._n 9_o etc._n etc._n 12._o cassander_n a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v we_o shall_v not_o likely_o find_v any_o before_o pet._n lombard_n who_o live_v about_o 1130_o that_o do_v define_v the_o number_n of_o the_o sacrament_n art._n 13._o 13._o de_fw-fr num_fw-la sacr._n and_o particular_o alex._n hales_n the_o famous_a schoolman_n say_v that_o confirmation_n be_v ordain_v to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n by_o the_o meldensian_a council_n par._n 4._o q._n 9_o m._n 1._o 13._o pope_n gelasius_n say_v that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o substance_n or_o nature_n of_o bread_n cease_v not_o or_o perish_v not_o gelas_n count_v eutych_n gregory_n i._o say_v that_o our_o body_n as_o well_o as_o our_o soul_n be_v nourish_v by_o the_o eucharist_n sacram._n 16._o kal._n mar._n &_o in_o 6._o psal_n poenit_fw-la 14._o pope_n gelasius_n declare_v either_o let_v they_o receive_v the_o whole_a sacrament_n or_o let_v they_o be_v drive_v from_o the_o whole_a for_o the_o divide_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o sacrament_n can_v be_v do_v without_o great_a sacrilege_n de_fw-fr consecr_n dist_n 2._o comperimus_fw-la and_o pope_n gregory_n i._o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v the_o constant_a practice_n for_o the_o people_n to_o receive_v in_o both_o kind_n sacram._n in_o quadrag_n tr._n 3._o vid._n vindication_n of_o the_o answer_n to_o some_o paper_n p._n 75._o 15._o anacletus_fw-la bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v decree_v that_o all_o present_a shall_v communicate_v or_o else_o shall_v be_v turn_v out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o so_o the_o apostle_n do_v order_n and_o the_o holy_a church_n or_o rome_n observe_v par._n 3._o dist_n 1._o episcop_n &_o 2._o peracta_fw-la gregory_n i._o forbid_v the_o priest_n to_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n alone_o greg._n lib._n capital_n cap._n 7._o apud_fw-la cassand_n liturg._n c._n 33._o 16._o this_o be_v neither_o in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n gelasius_n or_o pope_n gregory_n i._n vid._n vindication_n of_o the_o answer_n p._n 73._o 17._o in_o gregory_n the_o first_o be_v time_n it_o be_v use_v in_o order_n to_o recovery_n and_o the_o eucharist_n be_v to_o be_v give_v after_o it_o sacram._n p._n 253._o vid._n vindicat._n of_o the_o answ_n p._n 77._o 18._o to_o marry_v be_v a_o privilege_n belong_v to_o the_o clergy_n as_o well_o as_o other_o so_o cassander_n consult_v art._n 23._o polyd._n virg._n invent._n l._n 5._o c._n 4._o by_o this_o parallel_n thus_o far_o draw_v betwixt_o the_o ancient_n and_o present_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o judge_n of_o the_o immutability_n and_o duration_n of_o the_o church_n which_o can_v no_o more_o be_v consistent_a with_o it_o than_o one_o part_n of_o a_o contradiction_n can_v be_v reconcile_v to_o another_o or_o than_o infallibility_n can_v be_v consistent_a with_o the_o have_v actual_o err_v to_o find_v fallible_a church_n mistake_v and_o at_o some_o time_n to_o vary_v
of_o papist_n be_v very_o inconsiderable_a and_o beside_o denmark_n norway_n sweden_n and_o the_o unite_a province_n in_o all_o which_o it_o be_v also_o the_o national_a religion_n and_o beside_o germany_n switzerland_n hungary_n transilvania_n in_o which_o be_v abundance_n of_o protestant_a church_n as_o there_o be_v late_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n too_o and_o it_o will_v never_o be_v forget_v by_o what_o method_n they_o have_v be_v extirpated_a beside_o all_o those_o country_n i_o say_v the_o protestant_n have_v also_o their_o church_n in_o the_o new_a world_n no_o less_o without_o the_o mixture_n of_o heretic_n and_o these_o consist_v of_o other_o kind_n of_o believer_n than_o those_o the_o romanist_n boast_v of_o in_o that_o quarter_n for_o whereas_o surius_n and_o other_o have_v tell_v prodigious_a story_n of_o incredible_a number_n of_o they_o that_o have_v be_v baptize_v by_o particular_a priest_n acosta_n though_o a_o jesuit_n acknowledge_v that_o many_o of_o they_o be_v drive_v to_o baptism_n as_o beast_n to_o the_o water_n 19_o de_fw-fr procur_fw-fr ind._n sal._n l._n 6._o c._n 3._o ovy_v hist_o ind._n occid_n l._n 17._o c._n 4._o benzo_n hist_o nou._n orb._n l._n 2._o c._n 19_o and_o oviedo_n say_v of_o cuba_n that_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o one_o or_o but_o extreme_o few_o that_o willing_o become_v christian_n and_o both_o he_o and_o benzo_n who_o be_v long_o conversant_a in_o those_o part_n say_v of_o cuba_n and_o new_a spain_n that_o they_o have_v scarce_o any_o thing_n belong_v to_o christianity_n beside_o the_o bare_a name_n of_o christian_n that_o they_o only_o mind_v the_o name_n they_o receive_v in_o baptism_n and_o not_o long_o after_o forget_v that_o too_o and_o the_o former_a of_o these_o make_v this_o no_o matter_n of_o wonder_n since_o he_o declare_v their_o converter_n to_o be_v no_o better_a christian_n than_o these_o convert_v and_o excellent_o expostulate_v with_o they_o about_o the_o horrible_a wickedness_n of_o their_o life_n tell_v they_o that_o will_v they_o give_v the_o poor_a indian_n good_a example_n this_o method_n will_v signify_v much_o more_o towards_o the_o make_n of_o they_o good_a christian_n than_o that_o course_n they_o take_v with_o they_o and_o the_o old_a mounseur_fw-fr arnaud_n in_o a_o assembly_n at_o paris_n scoff_v at_o the_o jesuit_n for_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o indian_n call_v it_o a_o brave_a warlike_a conversion_n conversionem_fw-la bellam_fw-la &_o bellicosam_fw-la and_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o have_v convert_v gladium_fw-la oris_fw-la in_o os_fw-la gladii_fw-la and_o whereas_o the_o cardinal_n in_o the_o word_n follow_v those_o last_o cite_v make_v this_o flourish_n that_o rome_n have_v church_n in_o all_o the_o four_o part_n of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o east_n in_o the_o indies_n to_o the_o west_n in_o america_n to_o the_o north_n in_o japan_n to_o the_o south_n in_o brasil_n and_o the_o uttermost_a part_n of_o africa_n if_o his_o meaning_n be_v more_o than_o this_o that_o there_o be_v no_o country_n in_o all_o those_o part_n but_o what_o have_v romanist_n in_o it_o it_o be_v to_o say_v no_o worse_o a_o mere_a flourish_n if_o he_o mean_v no_o more_o than_o so_o we_o may_v dare_v to_o affirm_v as_o much_o concern_v protestant_n but_o it_o matter_n not_o much_o whether_o we_o can_v or_o no_o since_o there_o be_v infinite_a number_n of_o christian_n who_o though_o they_o bear_v not_o the_o name_n of_o protestant_n yet_o agree_v with_o they_o in_o not_o be_v papist_n and_o as_o be_v say_v in_o all_o the_o great_a point_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n whether_o of_o faith_n or_o practice_n to_o pass_v by_o the_o christian_n under_o the_o patriarch_n of_o mozall_n of_o who_o postellus_n say_v though_o they_o be_v but_o few_o in_o comparison_n of_o what_o they_o have_v be_v 69._o cosmog_n p._n 69._o yet_o they_o be_v many_o more_o than_o we_o latin_n to_o say_v nothing_o neither_o of_o the_o armenian_a christian_n false_o call_v nestorian_n who_o catholic_n as_o they_o call_v their_o patriarch_n otho_n frisingensis_n report_v to_o have_v under_o his_o obedience_n above_o a_o thousand_o bishop_n edit_n see_v brerewood_n be_v inquiry_n p._n 211._o last_o edit_n from_o the_o report_n of_o his_o legate_n send_v to_o rome_n both_o which_o vast_a body_n of_o christian_n acknowledge_v no_o subjection_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n i_o say_v to_o pass_v by_o these_o we_o need_v not_o instance_n in_o any_o beside_o the_o greek_a church_n for_o the_o foresay_a purpose_n which_o have_v have_v a_o uninterrupted_a succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o be_v of_o great_a antiquity_n than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o which_o have_v produce_v more_o father_n than_o that_o church_n this_o church_n be_v divide_v into_o many_o nation_n as_o the_o hyberian_o the_o people_n of_o colchis_n now_o mengrelia_n the_o arabian_n chaldaean_n aethiopian_n egyptian_n moscovite_n bulgarian_n sclavonian_n albanian_o caramanian_o walachian_o moldavian_n grecian_n etc._n etc._n and_o we_o may_v guess_v what_o a_o huge_a disproportion_n there_o be_v in_o largeness_n between_o all_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o those_o subject_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o this_o that_o the_o country_n in_o europe_n and_o asia_n which_o the_o moscovite_n alone_o inhabit_v be_v compute_v to_o be_v near_o of_o as_o great_a a_o extent_n as_o all_o europe_n beside_o the_o greek_a church_n have_v four_o ancient_a patriarch_n the_o constantinopolitan_a the_o alexandrian_a the_o antiochian_a and_o the_o patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o since_o the_o patriarchate_o of_o constantinople_n have_v be_v under_o the_o turkish_a tyranny_n there_o have_v be_v a_o five_o patriarch_n viz._n of_o moscow_n cyril_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o since_o of_o constantinople_n bellarmin_n contemporary_a say_v of_o the_o greek_a church_n disperse_v through_o the_o foresay_a nation_n that_o they_o be_v steadfast_a in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n octavo_n ep._n 2._o add_v vytenbogard_a inter_fw-la ep._n praest_n vir._n p._n 399._o in_o octavo_n that_o no_o innovation_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v find_v among_o they_o and_o but_o only_o some_o difference_n in_o ceremony_n he_o acknowledge_v that_o some_o of_o those_o nation_n be_v not_o free_a from_o superstition_n but_o add_v that_o without_o detriment_n of_o the_o faith_n it_o be_v connive_v at_o because_o if_o can_v be_v remedy_v in_o regard_n of_o many_o difficulty_n but_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o essence_n of_o faith_n perseverantes_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o permanentes_fw-la they_o be_v fix_v and_o unalterable_a he_o also_o write_v that_o whereas_o the_o oriental_a church_n seem_v to_o be_v reproach_v for_o their_o ignorance_n 369._o ep._n 1._o ad_fw-la eundem_fw-la ibid._n p._n 369._o philosophy_n and_o other_o sort_n of_o learning_n be_v go_v from_o thence_o into_o other_o part_n since_o they_o have_v be_v oppress_v with_o many_o misery_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o turk_n yet_o they_o reap_v no_o small_a advantage_n hereby_o because_o by_o this_o mean_n they_o be_v unacquainted_a with_o those_o pestiferous_a question_n which_o at_o this_o time_n infect_v man_n ear_n and_o with_o the_o new_a monstrous_a portentous_a doctrine_n and_o it_o be_v plain_a what_o doctrine_n he_o chief_o mean_v he_o add_v that_o they_o be_v content_a with_o incompta_fw-la fides_n a_o plain_a undress_v faith_n laud._n see_v the_o r_n and_o dean_n stillingfleet_n defence_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n from_o the_o romanist_n change_n of_o heresy_n in_o his_o learned_a vindication_n of_o archbishop_n laud._n teach_v they_o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o ancestor_n and_o herein_o they_o persevere_v even_o unto_o blood_n that_o they_o keep_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d integram_fw-la the_o faith_n entire_o that_o they_o see_v themselves_o bereave_v of_o all_o their_o substance_n their_o child_n snatch_v from_o their_o embrace_n and_o be_v continual_o bring_v into_o the_o great_a tribulation_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o grievous_a to_o they_o to_o suffer_v these_o thing_n for_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n etc._n etc._n so_o that_o the_o motto_n which_o minutius_n felix_n make_v for_o the_o primitive_a christian_n non_fw-la magna_fw-la loquimur_fw-la sed_fw-la vivimus_fw-la great_a thing_n be_v not_o so_o much_o talk_v as_o live_v by_o we_o this_o great_a prelate_n who_o fidelity_n in_o this_o account_n be_v unquestionable_a he_o be_v a_o person_n of_o as_o fame_a piety_n as_o learning_n do_v assure_v we_o be_v deserve_v by_o these_o greek_a christian_n but_o for_o all_o this_o they_o must_v all_o be_v doom_v to_o hell_n torment_v as_o effectual_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n sentence_n can_v do_v it_o because_o they_o will_v not_o truckle_n under_o she_o and_o so_o be_v make_v subject_n to_o a_o double_a bondage_n and_o thus_o have_v i_o sufficient_o show_v that_o it_o will_v be_v for_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n that_o
cardinal_n bellarmin_n four_o note_n of_o the_o church_n be_v as_o true_a as_o we_o have_v prove_v it_o false_a and_o that_o it_o will_v then_o overthrow_v instead_o of_o establish_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n marvellous_a pretence_n of_o be_v the_o true_a or_o catholic_n church_n the_o end_n pag._n 80._o lin_v 18._o read_v ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la london_n print_v by_o j._n d._n for_o richard_n chiswel_o at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n 1687._o the_o five_o note_n of_o the_o church_n examine_v viz_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n quinta_fw-la nota_fw-la est_fw-la successio_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la in_o romanâ_fw-la ecclesiacirc_n ab_fw-la apostolis_n deducta_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la nos_fw-la bellar._n l._n four_o c._n viij_o de_fw-fr notis_n ecclesiae_fw-la imprimatur_fw-la may_v 9_o 1687._o jo._n batte_o the_o disputer_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n boast_v in_o nothing_o so_o much_o as_o in_o the_o venerable_a name_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n use_v all_o mean_n to_o appropriate_v it_o to_o themselves_o exclusiu_o to_o any_o other_o and_o it_o be_v the_o most_o popular_a argument_n they_o flee_v to_o and_o with_o which_o they_o common_o begin_v and_o end_v all_o debate_n we_o be_v concern_v faithful_o and_o plain_o to_o examine_v their_o title_n or_o claim_n to_o so_o honourable_a a_o denomination_n and_o the_o many_o vast_a privilege_n found_v thereupon_o among_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n in_o bellarmin_n their_o chief_a champion_n the_o five_o in_o order_n and_o it_o may_v be_v not_o the_o least_o plausible_a in_o all_o his_o number_n be_v this_o of_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n the_o subject_a of_o this_o short_a essay_n in_o which_o three_o inquiry_n may_v be_v make_v 1._o how_o far_o this_o note_n may_v be_v necessary_a to_o any_o church_n 2._o how_o far_o this_o may_v be_v grant_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n 3._o how_o insufficient_a a_o proof_n it_o afford_v to_o they_o of_o any_o great_a advantage_n by_o it_o in_o answer_n to_o the_o former_a 1._o iniquiry_n 1._o concess_n 1._o it_o may_v i_o presume_v be_v general_o yield_v that_o to_o the_o complete_a constitution_n of_o the_o church_n it_o will_v be_v always_o needful_a that_o there_o be_v in_o it_o true_a and_o lawful_a pastor_n not_o only_o for_o the_o rightful_a administration_n of_o god_n word_n and_o sacrament_n but_o also_o for_o the_o due_a and_o orderly_a government_n thereof_o and_o the_o dispensation_n of_o wholesome_a discipline_n to_o the_o flock_n commit_v to_o their_o charge_n require_v all_o tender_a care_n vigilant_a inspection_n and_o indulgent_a provision_n from_o they_o and_o all_o cheerful_a and_o humble_a submission_n and_o ready_a subjection_n from_o these_o requisite_n to_o any_o society_n confirm_v by_o many_o precept_n and_o example_n in_o scripture_n we_o yield_v this_o pastoral_n power_n original_o to_o be_v from_o christ_n 2._o concess_n 2._o the_o head_n of_o his_o church_n the_o chief_a bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o his_o flock_n and_o by_o he_o immediate_o convey_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o from_o they_o derive_v by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n or_o ordination_n to_o their_o successor_n in_o the_o several_a church_n which_o they_o plant_v and_o so_o to_o be_v continue_v by_o a_o regular_a succession_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o several_a direction_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n and_o example_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o follow_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n and_o place_n of_o which_o we_o have_v any_o record_n extant_a no_o man_n take_v this_o honour_n all_o himself_o 5.4_o heb._n 5.4_o we_o grant_v far_o 3._o concess_n 3._o that_o according_a to_o the_o best_a evidence_n of_o scripture-rule_n or_o example_n and_o the_o constant_a practice_n of_o christ_n church_n the_o power_n of_o ordination_n be_v entrust_v with_o the_o bishop_n the_o chief_a governor_n thereof_o and_o ordinary_a successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n and_o we_o as_o ready_o embrace_v the_o canonical_a provision_n of_o the_o constitution_n under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o apostle_n by_o st._n clemens_n or_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o ever-renowned_n first_o council_n of_o nice_a that_o every_o bishop_n be_v ordain_v by_o three_o bishop_n or_o two_o at_o the_o least_o etc._n etc._n all_o most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n such_o be_v our_o government_n and_o succession_n not_o at_o all_o interrupt_v in_o the_o reformation_n whatever_o difficulty_n it_o struggle_v with_o elsewhere_o a_o signal_n happiness_n for_o which_o we_o have_v reason_n ever_o to_o bless_v god_n and_o not_o peevish_o to_o endeavour_v by_o wilful_a &_o schismatical_a separation_n to_o deprive_v ourselves_o of_o that_o privilege_n which_o may_v be_v the_o chief_a eyesore_a to_o our_o adversary_n and_o thereby_o to_o furnish_v they_o with_o new_a and_o better_a argument_n than_o ever_o yet_o they_o find_v against_o we_o if_o their_o succession_n be_v good_a so_o be_v we_o for_o sure_o it_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o one_o place_n whether_o we_o derive_v it_o through_o they_o by_o augustin_n the_o monk_n though_o ordain_v in_o france_n or_o from_o or_o by_o the_o british_a bishop_n who_o have_v be_v here_o several_a age_n before_o his_o come_v and_o by_o as_o regular_a a_o succession_n from_o apostolical_a time_n without_o any_o dependence_n as_o they_o profess_v or_o as_o far_o as_o we_o can_v find_v on_o the_o see_v or_o bishop_n of_o rome_n however_o it_o may_v be_v note_v 1._o observe_v 1._o that_o though_o this_o succession_n of_o bishop_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o complete_a constitution_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o it_o may_v well_o be_v doubt_v whether_o it_o be_v indispensable_a to_o the_o very_o be_v of_o it_o so_o as_o to_o unchurch_n every_o place_n that_o want_v these_o for_o baptism_n alone_o give_v we_o admission_n into_o the_o church_n and_o a_o title_n to_o the_o heavenly_a inheritance_n upon_o the_o performance_n of_o our_o part_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o although_o this_o oblige_v all_o christian_n to_o endeavour_v to_o provide_v themselves_o with_o lawful_a pastor_n for_o their_o constant_a supply_n in_o all_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o so_o to_o seek_v they_o abroad_o as_o far_o as_o they_o can_v where_o they_o have_v they_o not_o at_o home_n yet_o in_o a_o suppose_a case_n where_o these_o may_v not_o be_v have_v or_o but_o upon_o condition_n out_o of_o their_o power_n to_o yield_v or_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o who_o suppose_v baptism_n to_o be_v valid_a though_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n administer_v by_o any_o christian_a nay_o according_a to_o their_o catechism_n by_o jew_n infidel_n or_o heretic_n if_o he_o but_o intend_v to_o do_v what_o the_o church_n design_n hereby_o must_v not_o present_o unchurch_n any_o place_n or_o exclude_v all_o person_n that_o want_v this_o full_a provision_n of_o all_o needful_a help_n and_o advantage_n though_o some_o of_o most_o immediate_a divine_a institution_n what_o allowance_n god_n may_v make_v for_o great_a necessity_n or_o almost_o invincible_a difficulty_n and_o prejudices_fw-la where_o man_n be_v not_o wilful_o and_o obstinate_o want_v to_o themselves_o we_o can_v or_o must_v not_o determine_v it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o every_o church_n which_o may_v firm_o presume_v upon_o this_o lawful_a and_o orderly_a succession_n even_o from_o the_o apostle_n 2._o observe_v 2._o shall_v be_v able_a to_o produce_v the_o record_n of_o its_o conveyance_n through_o every_o age_n and_o in_o every_o single_a person_n by_o who_o it_o have_v past_a few_o church_n of_o of_o long_a continuance_n have_v be_v so_o happy_a as_o to_o preserve_v authentic_a register_n of_o all_o their_o transaction_n from_o their_o first_o plantation_n which_o must_v not_o weaken_v their_o authority_n or_o make_v doubtful_a the_o effect_n of_o their_o ministration_n where_o no_o positive_a evidence_n be_v bring_v to_o the_o contrary_n the_o ancient_n content_v themselves_o in_o deliver_v down_o to_o we_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o great_a see_v and_o mother-city_n not_o of_o rome_n only_o but_o of_o alexandria_n antioch_n jerusalem_n and_o other_o though_o bellarmin_n insinuate_v the_o contrary_a here_o as_o be_v most_o apparent_a in_o eusebius_n etc._n etc._n object_n answ_n to_o 3d_o object_n the_o eminence_n of_o their_o place_n and_o power_n the_o frequent_a resort_v of_o other_o neighbour_a church_n to_o they_o from_o who_o they_o be_v general_o derive_v or_o as_o dependant_a on_o their_o city_n in_o civil_a administration_n which_o the_o ecclesiastical_a usual_o follow_v these_o and_o such_o like_a reason_n make_v they_o more_o the_o notice_n of_o all_o about_o they_o and_o their_o succession_n more_o careful_o record_v in_o church-writer_n which_o possible_o they_o may_v have_v then_o do_v in_o many_o of_o the_o lesser_a
with_o the_o head_n and_o among_o themselves_o be_v too_o large_a a_o note_n to_o fit_v no_o other_o society_n but_o a_o true_a christian_a church_n now_o if_o in_o restrain_v his_o note_n he_o have_v understand_v christ_n by_o the_o head_n and_o by_o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n to_o one_o another_o a_o agreement_n in_o the_o faith_n that_o be_v once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n this_o indeed_o will_v have_v serve_v for_o the_o find_v out_o of_o a_o true_a church_n but_o then_o this_o be_v too_o large_a for_o the_o cardinal_n purpose_n which_o be_v to_o find_v no_o other_o church_n to_o be_v true_a but_o the_o roman_a and_o therefore_o by_o the_o head_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o understand_v the_o pope_n and_o by_o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n a_o agreement_n in_o all_o that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o it_o be_v to_o be_v hope_v that_o this_o will_v mark_v all_o the_o roman_a communion_n in_o but_o it_o will_v most_o undoubted_o mark_v all_o other_o christian_n out_o of_o the_o only_a true_a church_n for_o this_o be_v the_o admirable_a reason_n to_o which_o it_o lead_v that_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n for_o its_o head_n and_o for_o its_o faith_n profess_v the_o doctrine_n whatever_o it_o be_v that_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o from_o hence_o it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n quod_fw-la erat_fw-la demonstrandum_fw-la and_o if_o the_o cardinal_n have_v leave_v the_o matter_n thus_o in_o shorf_n he_o have_v in_o my_o mind_n do_v better_o for_o his_o church_n and_o his_o reason_n have_v be_v less_o exceptionable_a than_o he_o have_v make_v it_o in_o the_o pursuance_n of_o his_o enlargement_n when_o a_o man_n have_v to_o do_v with_o a_o untractable_a piece_n of_o matter_n it_o often_o happen_v that_o the_o more_o he_o strive_v to_o fashion_v it_o to_o his_o own_o purpose_n the_o far_o he_o be_v from_o it_o and_o so_o this_o great_a man_n by_o labour_v overmuch_o to_o make_v this_o his_o mark_n of_o unity_n utter_o unserviceable_a to_o any_o other_o church_n have_v give_v it_o that_o figure_n at_o last_o which_o make_v it_o unfit_a for_o his_o own_o as_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o convenient_a place_n for_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o make_v out_o these_o three_o thing_n i._o that_o the_o unity_n here_o offer_v be_v no_o true_a note_n of_o the_o church_n ii_o that_o if_o it_o be_v yet_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v it_o not_o iii_o that_o that_o unity_n which_o be_v indeed_o a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n we_o have_v and_o that_o in_o a_o much_o great_a degree_n than_o they_o i._o that_o the_o unity_n here_o offer_v be_v no_o true_a note_n of_o the_o church_n which_o i_o shall_v show_v concern_v both_o his_o instance_n of_o it_o and_o first_o concern_v union_n with_o the_o pope_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n that_o this_o shall_v be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o pretence_n that_o have_v neither_o scripture_n reason_n nor_o antiquity_n for_o it_o but_o all_o against_o it_o 1._o for_o scripture_n the_o cardinal_n offer_v not_o any_o proof_n from_o thence_o of_o his_o presumption_n which_o yet_o have_v be_v very_o requisite_a to_o a_o point_n of_o so_o vast_a a_o consequence_n if_o the_o scripture_n have_v afford_v any_o testimony_n to_o his_o purpose_n that_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o centre_n of_o its_o unity_n that_o union_n to_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o essential_a character_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o very_o be_v of_o it_o depend_v upon_o he_o but_o that_o the_o scripture_n shall_v not_o give_v we_o the_o least_o intimation_n of_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o perfect_o unaccountable_a that_o the_o very_a silence_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o this_o high_a nature_n be_v to_o we_o a_o sufficient_a argument_n that_o the_o apostle_n know_v nothing_o of_o any_o such_o constitution_n especial_o since_o they_o do_v not_o forget_v to_o make_v plain_a and_o frequent_a mention_n of_o another_o head_n of_o the_o church_n to_o which_o all_o the_o member_n be_v to_o be_v unite_v viz._n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n they_o tell_v we_o 23._o eph._n i_o 20_o 22_o 23._o that_o when_o god_n raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a he_o give_v he_o to_o be_v head_n over_o all_o thing_n to_o the_o church_n which_o be_v his_o body_n that_o as_o there_o be_v many_o member_n in_o one_o body_n so_o we_o be_v many_o 5._o rom._n twelve_o 4_o 5._o be_v one_o body_n in_o christ_n that_o as_o the_o body_n be_v one_o and_o have_v many_o member_n so_o also_o be_v christ_n 27._o 1_o cor._n twelve_o 12_o 27._o i.e._n christ_n and_o the_o church_n the_o whole_a be_v denominate_v from_o the_o head_n for_o we_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n we_o be_v tell_v that_o he_o be_v the_o head_n 16._o eph._n four_o 16._o even_o christ_n 23._o verse_n 23._o from_o who_o the_o whole_a body_n be_v fit_o join_v together_o etc._n etc._n that_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o saviour_n of_o the_o body_n that_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o body_n the_o church_n 18._o col._n i._n 18._o and_o much_o more_o to_o this_o purpose_n may_v be_v add_v now_o when_o the_o church_n be_v so_o frequent_o declare_v to_o be_v one_o body_n and_o to_o this_o one_o body_n one_o head_n be_v so_o frequent_o assign_v and_o no_o more_o what_o can_v any_o man_n who_o be_v not_o possess_v with_o prejudice_n make_v of_o this_o but_o that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o head_n of_o the_o church_n beside_o he_o who_o be_v so_o often_o mention_v as_o such_o and_o that_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o any_o man_n go_v about_o to_o add_v another_o head_n to_o the_o church_n he_o may_v if_o he_o please_v find_v out_o another_o church_n for_o the_o head_n nor_o do_v it_o help_v at_o all_o that_o they_o pretend_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v but_o the_o vicarious_a and_o ministerial_a head_n of_o the_o church_n since_o if_o without_o union_n to_o he_o we_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v no_o part_n in_o christ_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o this_o pretend_v vicarious_a head_n shall_v have_v be_v as_o plain_o and_o frequent_o express_v as_o we_o know_v the_o true_a and_o real_a head_n to_o have_v be_v nay_o it_o be_v something_o more_o necessary_a since_o a_o very_a slender_a intimation_n may_v have_v be_v sufficient_a to_o assure_v we_o that_o he_o who_o be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n 18._o col._n i._n 15_o 18._o by_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v create_v and_o by_o who_o all_o thing_n consist_v be_v also_o the_o head_n of_o the_o body_n the_o church_n 14._o ver._n 14._o that_o he_o in_o who_o we_o have_v redemption_n through_o his_o blood_n who_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o body_n and_o for_o our_o sake_n humble_v himself_o to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n shall_v be_v also_o the_o head_n of_o the_o body_n and_o be_v exalt_v to_o be_v head_n over_o all_o thing_n unto_o his_o church_n he_o i_o say_v in_o who_o infinite_a power_n and_o goodness_n meet_v but_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v another_o head_n give_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o be_v unite_v to_o which_o be_v no_o less_o necessary_a than_o union_n to_o christ_n himself_o and_o that_o this_o catholic_n head_n shall_v be_v no_o other_o than_o a_o sinful_a man_n and_o he_o very_o often_o none_o of_o the_o best_a this_o be_v so_o far_o remove_v from_o self-evidence_n or_o even_a probability_n that_o it_o certain_o need_v very_o express_a mention_n if_o not_o frequent_a inculcation_n now_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v frequent_o mention_v as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n who_o in_o comparison_n need_v not_o to_o be_v mention_v at_o all_o and_o that_o no_o mention_n at_o all_o shall_v be_v make_v of_o another_o head_n of_o the_o church_n that_o need_v it_o very_o much_o be_v for_o they_o to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o who_o make_v union_n to_o this_o late_a head_n no_o less_o necessary_a to_o a_o part_n in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n than_o union_n to_o the_o former_a which_o account_n will_v be_v much_o hard_a to_o be_v give_v inasmuch_o as_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o this_o pretend_a head_n where_o there_o be_v the_o most_o fair_a and_o invite_a occasion_n for_o it_o that_o can_v be_v well_o imagine_v thus_o st._n paul_n show_v what_o gift_n christ_n bestow_v upon_o his_o church_n after_o his_o ascension_n say_v he_o give_v some_o apostle_n and_o some_o prophet_n etc._n eph._n four_o 11_o 12_o etc._n etc._n and_o some_o evangelist_n and_o some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o body_n of_o
we_o be_v all_o make_v to_o drink_v into_o one_o spirit_n 4._o there_o be_v also_o a_o unity_n of_o obedience_n to_o all_o the_o institution_n and_o law_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v a_o instance_n of_o unity_n that_o ought_v by_o no_o mean_n to_o be_v forget_v this_o be_v no_o less_o a_o common_a duty_n than_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o faith_n the_o performance_n whereof_o unit_v we_o effectual_o to_o he_o as_o to_o our_o head_n and_o make_v we_o live_v member_n of_o his_o body_n 5._o there_o be_v the_o unity_n of_o christian_a affection_n and_o brotherly_a kindness_n of_o which_o our_o lord_n speak_v when_o he_o say_v by_o this_o shall_v all_o man_n know_v that_o you_o be_v my_o disciple_n if_o you_o love_v one_o another_o thus_o st._n paul_n twelve_o 1_o cor._n twelve_o the_o member_n shall_v have_v the_o same_o care_n one_o of_o another_o etc._n etc._n 6._o there_o be_v a_o unity_n of_o discipline_n and_o government_n which_o be_v maintain_v chief_o by_o retain_v for_o substance_n the_o same_o form_n that_o be_v leave_v in_o the_o church_n by_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n confederate_v together_o as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v for_o the_o edification_n of_o their_o flock_n by_o regard_v every_o regular_a act_n of_o authority_n in_o one_o church_n as_o the_o act_n of_o the_o whole_a and_o give_v no_o occasion_n to_o breach_n of_o christian-communion_n by_o abuse_v a_o lawful_a or_o by_o claim_v a_o undue_a authority_n etc._n etc._n 7._o there_o be_v likewise_o a_o unity_n of_o communion_n in_o the_o service_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n in_o glorify_v god_n with_o one_o mouth_n in_o join_v in_o the_o same_o religious_a assembly_n for_o prayer_n and_o sacrament_n for_o act_n of_o common_a piety_n and_o devotion_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o gospel_n i_o need_v not_o mention_v any_o more_o instance_n of_o christian_a unity_n since_o those_o that_o be_v more_o particular_a may_v be_v easy_o deduce_v from_o these_o now_o to_o speak_v clear_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v all_o these_o kind_n and_o instance_n of_o unity_n in_o the_o church_n but_o we_o see_v evident_o that_o they_o be_v not_o all_o there_o i_o mean_v in_o every_o part_n and_o member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o all_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n how_o necessary_a soever_o they_o may_v be_v whether_o to_o the_o wellbeing_n of_o it_o or_o to_o the_o salvation_n of_o those_o person_n whereof_o the_o church_n consist_v but_o some_o of_o they_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o they_o be_v the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o one_o lord_n the_o profession_n of_o the_o one_o faith_n and_o admission_n into_o the_o state_n of_o christian_a duty_n and_o privilege_n by_o one_o baptism_n and_o this_o be_v all_o that_o i_o can_v find_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n inasmuch_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o we_o be_v all_o baptize_v into_o one_o body_n and_o therefore_o so_o far_o as_o unity_n in_o these_o thing_n be_v spread_v and_o obtain_v in_o the_o world_n so_o far_o and_o no_o far_o be_v the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n propagate_v because_o it_o be_v one_o by_o this_o unity_n but_o then_o indeed_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o far_a unity_n a_o unity_n of_o observe_v all_o the_o institution_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n a_o unity_n of_o christian_a charity_n and_o good_a will_n a_o unity_n of_o government_n and_o discipline_n a_o unity_n of_o communion_n in_o religious_a assembly_n to_o which_o i_o will_v add_v also_o that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o unity_n of_o care_n to_o keep_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o christian_n all_o dangerous_a error_n and_o unlawful_a practice_n and_o when_o such_o begin_v to_o appear_v much_o more_o if_o they_o have_v take_v root_n and_o be_v grow_v to_o a_o scandal_n to_o root_v they_o out_o again_o but_o unity_n in_o these_o thing_n do_v not_o run_v through_o the_o whole_a church_n or_o through_o that_o body_n which_o be_v one_o in_o the_o three_o former_a respect_n and_o therefore_o it_o must_v necessary_o be_v grant_v that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o one_o body_n in_o those_o late_a respect_n though_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v so_o but_o because_o these_o be_v proper_a instance_n of_o church-unity_n though_o not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o church_n therefore_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o those_o particular_a church_n which_o keep_v unity_n in_o these_o respect_v better_a than_o other_o do_v have_v the_o mark_v of_o ecclesiastical_a unity_n in_o a_o high_a degree_n than_o those_o other_o inasmuch_o as_o they_o have_v not_o only_o that_o unity_n which_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o a_o true_a church_n but_o that_o also_o which_o be_v the_o mark_n of_o a_o pure_a church_n and_o be_v not_o only_o one_o body_n in_o those_o thing_n without_o which_o they_o can_v not_o be_v part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o one_o also_o in_o those_o thing_n wherein_o all_o other_o part_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v one_o with_o they_o we_o therefore_o according_a to_o truth_n allow_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n because_o she_o hold_v that_o one_o lord_n that_o one_o faith_n that_o one_o baptism_n which_o we_o hold_v &_o without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o church_n at_o all_o and_o thus_o far_o she_o maintain_v catholic_n unity_n but_o inasmuch_o as_o she_o have_v violate_v the_o institution_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n concern_v the_o other_o sacrament_n as_o in_o other_o respect_n so_o by_o withhold_v the_o cup_n from_o the_o people_n notwithstanding_o he_o say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o and_o that_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o be_v all_o make_v to_o drink_v into_o one_o spirit_n even_o all_o that_o belong_v to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n she_o have_v depart_v from_o catholic_n unity_n the_o unity_n of_o obedience_n because_o she_o will_v not_o be_v content_a to_o be_v a_o sister_n but_o claim_v to_o be_v the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o other_o christian_a church_n and_o have_v advance_v her_o bishop_n to_o be_v head_n and_o monarch_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o will_v have_v commuion_n with_o no_o other_o christian_a society_n but_o such_o as_o will_v be_v content_a to_o become_v her_o subject_n and_o will_v allow_v no_o act_n of_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n to_o be_v valid_a but_o in_o a_o state_n of_o dependence_n upon_o she_o she_o have_v therefore_o depart_v from_o the_o catholic_n unity_n of_o government_n and_o discipline_n because_o she_o have_v bring_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n transubstantiation_n purgatory_n invocation_n of_o saint_n etc._n etc._n into_o her_o creed_n and_o practice_n suitable_a to_o such_o false_a doctrine_n into_o her_o worship_n she_o have_v depart_v from_o that_o purity_n of_o profess_v the_o faith_n etc._n etc._n in_o which_o all_o church_n shall_v be_v one_o and_o because_o she_o will_v have_v no_o communion_n with_o we_o but_o upon_o these_o term_n which_o be_v impossible_a she_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o catholic_n communion_n final_o because_o she_o have_v pursue_v all_o christian_n that_o dare_v to_o open_v their_o mouth_n against_o these_o innovation_n with_o anathema_n etc._n etc._n and_o sacrifice_v the_o life_n of_o innumerable_a christian_n to_o her_o resentment_n she_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o catholic_n charity_n with_o these_o thing_n the_o church_n of_o england_n can_v be_v charge_v nor_o with_o any_o such_o thing_n as_o these_o not_o true_o and_o just_o i_o be_o sure_a in_o her_o worship_n and_o aministration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n she_o transgress_v not_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o her_o government_n she_o encroach_v not_o upon_o the_o liberty_n of_o other_o church_n to_o her_o creed_n she_o have_v add_v no_o novelty_n to_o her_o communion_n she_o have_v annex_v no_o unlawful_a condition_n she_o do_v not_o unchurch_n those_o part_n of_o christendom_n that_o hold_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o faith_n no_o not_o that_o church_n itself_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o have_v add_v thereunto_o so_o many_o enormous_a innovation_n she_o have_v not_o embroil_v the_o world_n nor_o waste_a country_n with_o violence_n upon_o such_o account_n as_o these_o she_o have_v the_o mark_n of_o christian_a unity_n incomparable_o more_o than_o the_o other_o church_n from_o such_o distinct_a notion_n of_o unity_n as_o i_o have_v lay_v down_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o idle_a than_o to_o seek_v for_o a_o church_n by_o that_o mark_n of_o unity_n which_o the_o cardinal_n lay_v down_o which_o come_v to_o no_o more_o than_o this_o that_o man_n be_v all_o of_o a_o mind_n that_o there_o be_v no_o division_n among_o they_o etc._n etc._n since_o it_o be_v not_o
of_o infallibility_n church-authority_n and_o resolution_n of_o faith_n and_o judge_n of_o controversy_n etc._n etc._n p._n 119._o the_o reformation_n never_o do_v decline_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o its_o justification_n p._n 120_o 121._o luther_n and_o calvin_n misrepresent_v by_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n p._n 122._o the_o apostolic_a church_n found_v and_o govern_v by_o the_o apostle_n over_o all_o the_o world_n be_v the_o true_a standard_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n ibid._n the_o scripture_n the_o only_a authentic_a record_n of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n and_o the_o only_a certain_a account_n we_o have_v of_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o most_o primitive_a church_n p._n 123._o several_a doctrine_n examine_v by_o antiquity_n 1._o supremacy_n not_o allow_v of_o by_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a nor_o that_o of_o constantinople_n nor_o chalcedon_n p._n 125._o 2._o transubstantiation_n acknowledge_v by_o many_o of_o the_o schoolman_n not_o to_o have_v be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n ibid._n this_o doctrine_n bring_v into_o the_o church_n a_o little_a before_o berengarius_fw-la and_o not_o thorough_o understand_v even_o then_o by_o those_o who_o hold_v it_o p._n 126._o berengarius_fw-la his_o recantation_n and_o the_o gloss_n upon_o it_o p._n 127._o the_o number_n of_o the_o sacrament_n not_o declare_v to_o be_v seven_o by_o the_o primitive_a church_n nor_o mention_v by_o any_o author_n till_o 1100_o year_n after_o christ_n ibid._n necessity_n of_o auricular_a confession_n question_v by_o learned_a man_n in_o the_o time_n of_o peter_n lombard_n p._n 128._o purgatory_n not_o mention_v by_o any_o ancient_a writer_n p._n 128_o 129._o indulgence_n receive_v very_o late_o into_o the_o church_n ibid._n prayer_n and_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a a_o ancient_a practice_n but_o no_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n ibid._n prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n never_o the_o practice_n any_o where_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n ib._n worship_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n and_o of_o image_n of_o no_o ancient_a date_n in_o the_o church_n ibid._n all_o these_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o distinguish_v it_o from_o the_o reform_a that_o they_o be_v not_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v further_a prove_v 1._o from_o their_o expurgatory_n indices_fw-la p._n 130._o 2._o from_o the_o correct_a or_o rather_o corrupt_v the_o father_n and_o the_o counterfeit_n so_o many_o false_a one_o and_o obtrude_a spurious_a author_n upon_o the_o world._n p._n 131_o 132._o 3._o from_o that_o little_a esteem_n and_o regard_n they_o too_o often_o have_v for_o antiquity_n when_o ever_o it_o make_v against_o they_o p._n 133._o 4._o from_o the_o determination_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o present_a church_n which_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n they_o stick_v to_o and_o which_o they_o prefer_v a_o thousand_o time_n before_o antiquity_n or_o the_o whole_a sense_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o seven_o note_n the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o the_o head._n unity_n no_o proper_a character_n of_o a_o true_a church_n because_o find_v upon_o society_n of_o different_a nature_n and_o contrary_a design_n p._n 137._o it_o be_v a_o good_a mark_n when_o it_o be_v a_o duty_n as_o it_o be_v a_o duty_n when_o the_o term_n of_o union_n be_v so_o ibid._n wherein_o this_o unity_n consist_v according_a to_o bellarmine_n p._n 138._o hereupon_o three_o thing_n be_v endeavour_v 1._o that_o the_o unity_n here_o offer_v be_v no_o true_a note_n of_o the_o church_n forasmuch_o as_o union_n with_o the_o pope_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n have_v no_o foundation_n in_o scripture_n reason_n or_o antiquity_n p._n 140._o 1._o scripture_n p._n 141_o 142_o 143._o 2._o no_o foundation_n of_o it_o from_o reason_n p._n 144_o 145._o 3._o nor_o any_o colour_n from_o antiquity_n p._n 145_o to_o 149._o the_o cardinal_n argument_n for_o the_o necessity_n of_o this_o union_n from_o experience_n consider_v p._n 149._o 2._o the_o union_n which_o they_o pretend_v to_o among_o themselves_o as_o member_n no_o certain_a note_n of_o the_o church_n p._n 150._o 1._o this_o be_v no_o more_o than_o what_o any_o society_n may_v have_v as_o well_o as_o the_o true_a church_n and_o any_o other_o church_n as_o well_o as_o the_o roman_a p._n 151._o 2._o as_o there_o may_v be_v this_o union_n out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n so_o its_o may_v not_o be_v within_o it_o ibid._n ii_o if_o unity_n be_v a_o true_a note_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v it_o not_o which_o be_v probable_o true_a of_o the_o first_o and_o most_o certain_o true_a of_o the_o second_o branch_n of_o the_o cardinal_n unity_n p._n 152._o 1._o it_o be_v probable_a that_o there_o be_v not_o now_o nor_o have_v be_v for_o many_o age_n any_o true_a pope_n for_o the_o church_n to_o be_v unite_v to_o ibid._n 2._o neither_o be_v there_o that_o union_n in_o all_o point_n of_o doctrine_n among_o the_o papist_n or_o such_o a_o union_n of_o their_o member_n as_o shall_v prevent_v the_o break_n away_o of_o some_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o rest_n p._n 153._o not_o that_o wonderful_a agreement_n as_o the_o cardinal_n pretend_v in_o the_o sacred_a writer_n of_o their_o church_n nor_o in_o the_o decree_n of_o their_o lawful_a council_n nor_o in_o those_o of_o their_o pope_n p._n 154._o several_a dispute_n between_o the_o canonist_n and_o schoolman_n in_o many_o material_a point_n of_o doctrine_n between_o the_o thomist_n the_o scotist_n and_o occamist_n between_o the_o franciscan_n and_o dominican_n about_o the_o conception_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n the_o jansenist_n and_o molinist_n p._n 155_o 156._o bellarmin_n answer_n to_o all_o this_o viz._n they_o differ_v not_o in_o those_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o faith_n consider_v p._n 156_o 157._o the_o cardinal_n difference_n between_o the_o division_n of_o heretic_n from_o the_o church_n and_o a_o division_n from_o heresy_n consider_v p._n 158._o if_o there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n a_o certain_a rule_n for_o end_v controversy_n viz._n the_o sentence_n of_o the_o chief_a pastor_n or_o a_o definition_n of_o a_o general_n council_n ibid._n 1._o why_o be_v not_o these_o the_o mean_n of_o compose_v those_o controversy_n that_o carry_v we_o away_o from_o they_o ibid._n 2._o how_o can_v those_o be_v certain_a mean_n of_o compose_v controversy_n concern_v which_o even_o in_o their_o own_o church_n there_o be_v the_o great_a controversy_n of_o all_o p._n 159._o this_o large_o show_v from_o the_o learned_a launoy_n epistle_n to_o nicholas_n gatinaeus_fw-la upon_o this_o question_n p._n 160_o 161_o 162_o 163._o iii_o that_o that_o unity_n which_o be_v indeed_o a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n we_o protestant_n have_v and_o that_o in_o a_o much_o great_a degree_n than_o they_o p._n 164._o the_o true_a ground_n and_o notion_n of_o church-vnity_n represent_v ibid._n 1._o unity_n of_o submission_n to_o one_o head_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n ibid._n 2._o unity_n of_o profess_v the_o common_a faith_n once_o deliver_v to_o to_o the_o saint_n ground_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n and_o summary_o expound_v in_o the_o ancient_a creed_n p._n 165._o 3._o unity_n of_o sacrament_n in_o the_o church_n ibid._n 4._o unity_n of_o obedience_n to_o all_o institution_n and_o law_n of_o christ_n p._n 165._o 5._o unity_n of_o christian_a affection_n and_o brotherly_a kindness_n ibid._n 6._o unity_n of_o discipline_n and_o government_n ibid._n 7._o unity_n of_o communion_n in_o the_o service_n and_o worship_n of_o god._n p._n 166._o some_o though_o not_o all_o of_o these_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n viz._n the_o acknowledgement_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o profession_n of_o one_o faith_n and_o admission_n into_o the_o state_n of_o christian_a duty_n and_o privilege_n by_o one_o baptism_n ibid._n those_o particular_a church_n which_o keep_v unity_n in_o all_o these_o respect_v better_a than_o other_o do_v have_v the_o mark_n of_o ecclesiastical_a unity_n in_o a_o high_a degree_n than_o those_o other_o have_v p._n 167._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o she_o hold_v one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n be_v part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o so_o far_o maintain_v catholic_n unity_n ibid._n wherein_o she_o depart_v from_o catholic_n unity_n purity_n and_o charity_n show_v in_o several_a instance_n p._n 167_o 168._o the_o church_n of_o england_n not_o chargeable_a on_o the_o same_o account_n ibid._n 168_o 169._o unity_n of_o communion_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v unity_n of_o communion_n among_o themselves_o but_o not_o catholic_n unity_n of_o communion_n because_o the_o term_n of_o it_o be_v many_o of_o they_o unlawful_a and_o unjust_a p._n 170._o the_o contrary_a to_o which_o the_o true_a case_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n ibid._n 171._o the_o conclusion_n p._n 171_o
christian_n now_o i_o must_v confess_v these_o note_n as_o he_o well_o observe_v be_v common_a to_o all_o christian_a church_n and_o be_v intend_v to_o be_v so_o and_o if_o this_o do_v not_o answer_v his_o design_n we_o can_v help_v it_o the_o protestant_a church_n do_v not_o desire_v to_o confine_v the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n to_o their_o own_o private_a communion_n but_o be_v very_o glad_a if_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n be_v as_o true_a church_n as_o themselves_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n which_o consist_v of_o a_o great_a many_o particular_a diocesan_n or_o national_a church_n have_v the_o same_o nature_n and_o when_o the_o whole_a consist_v of_o univocal_a part_n every_o part_n must_v have_v the_o same_o nature_n with_o the_o whole_a and_o therefore_o as_o he_o who_o will_v describe_v a_o man_n must_v describe_v he_o by_o such_o character_n as_o fit_v all_o mankind_n so_o he_o who_o give_v the_o essential_a character_n of_o a_o church_n must_v give_v such_o note_n as_o fit_v all_o true_a church_n in_o the_o world._n this_o indeed_o do_v not_o fit_a the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o make_v it_o the_o only_a catholic_n and_o the_o only_a true_a church_n nor_o do_v we_o intend_v it_o shall_v but_o it_o fit_v all_o true_a church_n wherever_o they_o be_v and_o that_o be_v much_o better_a to_o answer_v then_o his_o argument_n when_o we_o give_v note_n which_o belong_v to_o a_o whole_a species_n as_o we_o must_v do_v when_o we_o give_v the_o note_n of_o a_o true_a christian_a church_n there_o be_v a_o great_a many_o true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n which_o make_v up_o the_o catholic_n or_o universal_a church_n we_o must_v give_v such_o note_n as_o belong_v to_o the_o whole_a kind_n that_o be_v to_o all_o true_a christian_a church_n and_o though_o these_o note_n be_v common_a indeed_o to_o all_o true_a christian_a church_n yet_o they_o be_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o a_o true_a christian_a church_n as_o the_o essential_a property_n of_o a_o man_n be_v common_a to_o all_o man_n but_o proper_a to_o mankind_n and_o this_o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v they_o true_a note_n for_o such_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n as_o do_v not_o fit_v all_o true_a church_n can_v be_v true_a note_n as_o for_o what_o the_o cardinal_n urge_v that_o all_o sect_n of_o christian_n think_v themselves_o to_o have_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o true_a sacrament_n i_o be_o apt_a to_o think_v they_o do_v but_o what_o then_o if_o they_o have_v not_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o true_a sacrament_n they_o be_v not_o true_a church_n whatever_o they_o think_v of_o it_o and_o yet_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o true_a sacrament_n be_v certain_a note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n a_o purchase_n upon_o a_o bad_a title_n which_o a_o man_n think_v a_o good_a one_o be_v not_o a_o good_a estate_n but_o yet_o a_o purchase_n upon_o a_o title_n which_o be_v not_o only_o think_v to_o be_v but_o be_v a_o good_a one_o be_v a_o good_a estate_n all_o that_o can_v be_v say_v in_o this_o case_n be_v that_o man_n can_v be_v no_o more_o certain_a that_o they_o have_v a_o true_a church_n than_o they_o be_v that_o they_o have_v a_o true_a faith_n and_o true_a sacrament_n and_o this_o i_o ready_o grant_v but_o as_o man_n mistake_n in_o this_o matter_n do_v not_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v no_o true_a faith_n nor_o true_a sacrament_n so_o neither_o do_v it_o prove_v that_o a_o true_a faith_n and_o true_a sacrament_n be_v not_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n 2._o the_o cardinal_n be_v second_o objection_n be_v that_o the_o note_n of_o any_o thing_n must_v be_v more_o know_v than_o the_o thing_n itself_o which_o we_o ready_o grant_v now_o say_v he_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n be_v more_o knowable_a than_o which_o be_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o this_o we_o deny_v and_o that_o for_o a_o very_a plain_a reason_n because_o the_o true_a church_n can_v be_v know_v without_o know_v the_o true_a faith_n for_o no_o church_n be_v a_o true_a church_n which_o do_v not_o profess_v the_o true_a faith._n we_o may_v as_o well_o say_v that_o we_o can_v know_v a_o horse_n without_o know_v what_o the_o shape_n and_o figure_n of_o a_o horse_n be_v which_o distinguish_v it_o from_o all_o other_o creature_n as_o that_o we_o can_v know_v a_o christian_a church_n without_o know_v what_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v which_o distinguish_v it_o from_o all_o other_o church_n or_o we_o may_v as_o well_o say_v that_o we_o can_v know_v any_o thing_n without_o know_v what_o it_o be_v since_o the_o very_a essence_n of_o a_o true_a church_n consist_v in_o the_o true_a faith_n which_o therefore_o must_v be_v first_o know_v before_o we_o can_v know_v the_o true_a church_n but_o the_o cardinal_n urge_v that_o we_o can_v know_v what_o true_a scripture_n be_v nor_o what_o be_v the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n but_o from_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v know_v the_o church_n before_o we_o can_v koow_v the_o true_a faith._n as_o for_o the_o first_o i_o ready_o grant_v that_o at_o this_o distance_n from_o the_o write_n the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o assure_v we_o that_o they_o be_v write_v by_o the_o apostle_n or_o apostolical_a man_n and_o own_a for_o inspire_a write_n but_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n but_o herein_o we_o do_v not_o consider_v they_o as_o a_o church_n but_o as_o credible_a witness_n whether_o there_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o a_o church_n or_o not_o we_o can_v know_v only_o by_o the_o scripture_n but_o without_o know_v whether_o there_o be_v a_o church_n or_o not_o if_o we_o know_v that_o for_o so_o many_o hundred_o year_n these_o book_n have_v be_v own_v to_o be_v write_v by_o such_o man_n and_o have_v be_v receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n day_n till_o now_o by_o all_o who_o call_v themselves_o christian_n this_o be_v as_o good_a a_o historical_a proof_n as_o we_o can_v have_v for_o any_o thing_n and_o it_o be_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o uninterrupted_a tradition_n not_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n consider_v as_o a_o church_n which_o move_v we_o to_o believe_v they_o for_o set_v aside_o the_o authority_n of_o tradition_n how_o can_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o company_n of_o man_n who_o call_v themselves_o the_o church_n before_o i_o know_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o church_n move_v i_o to_o believe_v any_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v 1600._o year_n a-go_a but_o there_o be_v a_o company_n of_o man_n in_o the_o world_n and_o have_v be_v successive_o for_o 1600._o year_n whether_o they_o be_v a_o church_n or_o not_o be_v nothing_o to_o this_o question_n who_o assure_v i_o that_o these_o book_n which_o we_o call_v the_o scripture_n be_v write_v by_o such_o inspire_a man_n and_o contain_v a_o faithful_a account_n of_o what_o christ_n do_v and_o teach_v and_o suffer_v and_o therefore_o i_o believe_v such_o book_n and_o from_o they_o i_o learn_v what_o that_o true_a faith_n be_v which_o make_v a_o true_a christian_a church_n as_o for_o the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n that_o we_o can_v understand_v what_o it_o be_v without_o the_o church_n this_o i_o also_o deny_v the_o scripture_n be_v very_o intelligible_a to_o honest_a and_o diligent_a reader_n in_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o if_o they_o be_v not_o i_o desire_v to_o know_v how_o we_o shall_v find_v out_o the_o church_n for_o certain_o the_o church_n have_v no_o character_n but_o what_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o then_o if_o we_o must_v believe_v the_o church_n before_o we_o can_v believe_v or_o understand_v the_o scripture_n we_o must_v believe_v the_o church_n before_o we_o can_v possible_o know_v whether_o there_o be_v a_o church_n or_o not_o if_o we_o prove_v the_o church_n by_o the_o scripture_n we_o must_v believe_v and_o understand_v the_o scripture_n before_o we_o can_v know_v the_o church_n if_o we_o believe_v and_o understand_v the_o scripture_n upon_o the_o authority_n and_o interpretation_n of_o the_o church_n consider_v as_o a_o church_n than_o we_o must_v know_v the_o church_n before_o the_o scripture_n the_o scripture_n can_v be_v know_v without_o the_o church_n nor_o the_o church_n without_o the_o scripture_n and_o yet_o one_o of_o they_o must_v be_v know_v first_o and_o yet_o neither_o of_o they_o can_v be_v know_v first_o according_a to_o these_o principle_n which_o be_v such_o a_o absurdity_n as_o all_o the_o art_n of_o the_o world_n can_v never_o palliate_v 3._o the_o cardinal_n be_v three_o objection_n be_v that_o the_o true_a note_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v inseparable_a from_o it_o whereas_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n and_o galatia_n do_v not_o always_o teach_v true_a doctrine_n some_o of_o the_o church_n
of_o corinth_n deny_v the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o galatian_n warp_a towards_o judaisme_n and_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n be_v guilty_a of_o great_a miscarriage_n in_o receive_v the_o lords-supper_n and_o yet_o be_v own_v for_o true_a church_n by_o the_o apostle_n a_o argument_n which_o much_o become_v the_o cardinal_n to_o use_v it_o be_v the_o best_a evidence_n i_o know_v of_o for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o true_a church_n that_o every_o corruption_n in_o faith_n and_o sacrament_n do_v not_o unchurch_n but_o how_o this_o prove_v that_o true_a faith_n and_o true_a sacrament_n be_v not_o a_o essential_a note_n and_o character_n of_o a_o true_a church_n i_o can_v guess_v i_o will_v desire_v any_o one_o to_o tell_v i_o for_o he_o whether_o a_o corrupt_a faith_n and_o false_a sacrament_n be_v the_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n or_o whether_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n as_o to_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o church_n what_o our_o faith_n and_o sacrament_n be_v second_o let_v we_o now_o consider_v the_o cardinal_n way_n by_o some_o certain_a mark_n and_o note_n to_o find_v out_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n before_o we_o know_v what_o a_o true_a church_n be_v to_o pick_v out_o of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n one_o church_n which_o we_o must_v own_v for_o the_o only_a true_a church_n and_o reject_v all_o other_o church_n which_o do_v not_o subject_v themselves_o to_o this_o one_o church_n to_o find_v out_o such_o a_o church_n on_o who_o authority_n we_o must_v rely_v for_o the_o whole_a christian_a faith_n and_o in_o who_o communion_n only_o pardon_v of_o sin_n be_v to_o be_v have_v that_o this_o be_v the_o use_n of_o note_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o have_v already_o show_v you_o and_o true_o they_o be_v very_o pretty_a thing_n to_o be_v prove_v by_o note_n as_o to_o consider_v they_o particular_o 1._o to_o find_v out_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n before_o we_o know_v what_o a_o true_a church_n be_v this_o methinks_v be_v not_o a_o natural_a way_n of_o inquiry_n but_o be_v like_o seek_v for_o we_o know_v not_o what_o there_o be_v two_o inquiry_n in_o order_n of_o nature_n before_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n viz._n whether_o there_o be_v a_o true_a church_n or_o not_o and_o what_o it_o be_v the_o first_o of_o these_o the_o cardinal_n take_v for_o grant_v that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n but_o i_o will_v take_v it_o for_o grant_v but_o desire_v these_o note-maker_n to_o give_v i_o some_o note_n to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n there_o be_v indeed_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o talk_n and_o noise_n in_o the_o world_n about_o a_o church_n but_o that_o be_v no_o proof_n that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o a_o self-evident_a proposition_n that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n and_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v prove_v now_o that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n must_v be_v prove_v by_o note_n as_o well_o as_o which_o be_v this_o true_a church_n or_o else_o the_o whole_a design_n of_o note_n be_v lose_v and_o i_o will_v glad_o see_v those_o note_n which_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n before_o we_o know_v what_o a_o church_n be_v to_o understand_v the_o mystery_n of_o this_o we_o must_v brief_o consider_v the_o reason_n and_o use_v of_o note_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n according_a to_o the_o popish_a resolution_n of_o faith_n into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n the_o first_o thing_n we_o must_v know_v be_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o we_o must_v receive_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o interpretation_n of_o they_o and_o the_o whole_a christian_a faith_n and_o worship_n from_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o can_v know_v nothing_o of_o religion_n till_o we_o have_v find_v the_o church_n the_o use_n then_o of_o note_n be_v to_o find_v out_o the_o church_n before_o and_o without_o the_o scripture_n for_o if_o they_o admit_v of_o a_o scripture-proof_n they_o must_v allow_v that_o we_o can_v know_v and_o understand_v the_o scripture_n without_o the_o authority_n or_o interpretation_n of_o the_o church_n which_o undermine_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o popery_n now_o i_o first_o desire_n to_o know_v how_o they_o will_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n without_o the_o scripture_n that_o you_o will_v say_v be_v visible_a itself_o for_o we_o see_v a_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n but_o what_o be_v it_o i_o see_v i_o see_v a_o company_n of_o man_n who_o call_v themselves_o a_o church_n and_o this_o be_v all_o that_o i_o can_v see_v and_o be_v this_o see_v a_o church_n a_o church_n must_v have_v a_o divine_a original_a and_o institution_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o see_v a_o church_n without_o see_v its_o character_n for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o other_o note_n or_o mark_v of_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n but_o the_o institution_n of_o it_o and_o this_o prove_v that_o we_o can_v know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n without_o know_v in_o some_o measure_n what_o this_o church_n be_v for_o the_o charter_n which_o find_v the_o church_n must_v declare_v the_o nature_n and_o constitution_n of_o it_o what_o its_o faith_n and_o worship_n and_o law_n and_o privilege_n be_v but_o now_o these_o essential_a character_n of_o a_o church_n must_v not_o be_v reckon_v by_o the_o romanist_n among_o the_o note_n of_o a_o church_n for_o than_o we_o must_v find_v out_o the_o true_a church_n by_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o the_o true_a worship_n not_o the_o true_a faith_n by_o the_o true_a church_n which_o destroy_v popery_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o these_o note-maker_n never_o attempt_v to_o give_v we_o any_o note_n whereby_o we_o shall_v know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n or_o what_o this_o church_n be_v for_o there_o be_v no_o note_n of_o these_o but_o such_o as_o they_o dare_v not_o give_v viz._n the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o every_o man_n private_a judgement_n of_o the_o sense_n and_o interpretation_n of_o they_o for_o at_o least_o till_o we_o have_v find_v a_o church_n we_o must_v judge_n for_o ourselves_o and_o then_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n come_v too_o late_o for_o we_o must_v first_o judge_v upon_o the_o whole_a of_o religion_n if_o we_o must_v find_v out_o a_o true_a church_n by_o the_o true_a faith_n before_o we_o can_v know_v the_o true_a church_n and_o we_o can_v rely_v on_o her_o authority_n before_o we_o know_v she_o and_o therefore_o they_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n which_o they_o can_v never_o prove_v in_o their_o way_n and_o attempt_v to_o give_v some_o note_n whereby_o to_o know_v which_o be_v the_o church_n and_o then_o learn_v what_o the_o church_n be_v from_o the_o church_n herself_o which_o be_v like_o give_v mark_n whereby_o to_o know_v a_o unicorn_n before_o i_o know_v whether_o there_o be_v a_o unicorn_n or_o not_o or_o what_o it_o be_v 2._o another_o blunder_n in_o this_o dispute_n about_o note_n be_v that_o they_o give_v we_o note_n whereby_o to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n before_o we_o know_v what_o a_o particular_a church_n be_v for_o all_o bellarmin_n note_n be_v intend_v only_o for_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o therefore_o his_o first_o note_n be_v the_o name_n catholic_n whereas_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o all_o true_a christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n unite_v together_o by_o one_o common_a faith_n and_o worship_n and_o such_o act_n of_o communion_n as_o distinct_a church_n be_v capable_a of_o and_o oblige_v to_o every_o particular_a church_n which_o profess_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o worship_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o true_a christian_a church_n and_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v all_o the_o true_a christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n which_o have_v all_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o be_v in_o some_o sense_n of_o the_o same_o communion_n so_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o know_v what_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v before_o we_o know_v what_o a_o particular_a church_n be_v as_o it_o be_v to_o know_v what_o the_o sea_n be_v before_o we_o know_v what_o water_n be_v every_o true_a single_a particular_a church_n have_v the_o whole_a and_o entire_a nature_n of_o a_o church_n and_o will_v be_v a_o true_a church_n though_o there_o be_v no_o other_o church_n in_o the_o world_n as_o the_o christian_a church_n at_o jerusalem_n be_v before_o any_o other_o christian_a church_n be_v plant_v and_o therefore_o there_o can_v be_v no_o other_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n but_o what_o belong_v to_o every_o true_a particular_a church_n and_o that_o can_v be_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o church_n and_o what_o all_o true_a christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n agree_v in_o viz._n the_o true_a faith_n and_o worship_n
of_o this_o for_o all_o those_o article_n which_o be_v before_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n must_v in_o order_n of_o nature_n be_v know_v before_o it_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n who_o make_v the_o world_n that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n who_o be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n suffer_v under_o pontius_n pilate_n be_v crucify_v dead_a and_o bury_v and_o descend_v into_o hell_n that_o he_o rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n from_o the_o dead_a and_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o sit_v on_o the_o right-hand_a of_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_n and_o from_o thence_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o then_o we_o may_v add_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n and_o not_o till_o then_o for_o the_o church_n be_v a_o society_n of_o man_n for_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n through_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o unite_v they_o into_o one_o mystical_a body_n so_o that_o we_o must_v know_v father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n before_o we_o can_v know_v what_o the_o catholic_n church_n mean_v and_o be_v it_o not_o strange_a then_o that_o our_o faith_n must_v be_v found_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n when_o we_o must_v first_o know_v all_o the_o great_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n before_o we_o can_v know_v any_o thing_n about_o a_o church_n this_o invert_v the_o order_n of_o our_o creed_n which_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v begin_v thus_o i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n and_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o that_o church_n i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_n and_o in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o no_o doubt_n but_o the_o apostle_n or_o those_o apostolical_a man_n who_o frame_v the_o creed_n will_v have_v put_v it_o so_o have_v they_o think_v the_o whole_a christian_a faith_n must_v be_v resolve_v into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n this_o short_a discourse_n i_o think_v be_v enough_o in_o general_a concern_v the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n and_o i_o shall_v leave_v the_o particular_a examination_n of_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n note_n to_o other_o hand_n which_o the_o reader_n may_v expect_v to_o follow_v in_o their_o order_n the_o end._n bellarmin_n first_o note_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_n examine_v prima_fw-la nota_fw-la est_fw-la ipsum_fw-la catholicae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la &_o christianorum_fw-la nomen_fw-la bellar._n cap._n 4._o de_fw-la notis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la p._n 1477._o imprimatur_fw-la apr._n 8._o 1687._o guil._n needham_n rr._n in_o christo_n p._n ac_fw-la d._n d._n wilhelmo_n archiep._n cant._n a_o sacr._n dome_a that_o the_o sincere_a preach_v of_o the_o faith_n or_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v lay_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o only_a sure_a infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o truth_n so_o clear_a in_o itself_o so_o often_o and_o full_o prove_v by_o learned_a man_n of_o the_o reformation_n that_o it_o may_v just_o seem_v a_o wonder_n that_o any_o church_n which_o be_v not_o conscious_a to_o herself_o of_o any_o error_n and_o deviation_n from_o it_o shall_v refuse_v to_o put_v herself_o upon_o that_o trial_n this_o give_v be_v to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n at_o first_o make_v it_o one_o and_o make_v it_o catholic_n according_a as_o this_o fare_v in_o any_o part_n or_o member_n of_o it_o be_v that_o church_n distinguish_v and_o denominate_v it_o will_v be_v true_a or_o false_a pure_a or_o corrupt_a sound_v or_o heretical_a according_a as_o the_o faith_n it_o hold_v bear_v a_o conformity_n or_o repugnance_n to_o the_o write_a doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n a_o orthodox_n faith_n make_v a_o orthodox_n church_n but_o if_o her_o faith_n become_v taint_v and_o heterodox_n the_o church_n will_v be_v so_o too_o and_o shall_v it_o happen_v whole_o to_o apostatise_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n it_o will_v whole_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o christian_a church_n this_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v notorious_o warp_a from_o truth_n decline_v the_o be_v examine_v and_o measure_v by_o this_o rule_n have_v indeed_o some_o reason_n to_o be_v against_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v so_o evident_o against_o she_o and_o endeavour_n to_o support_v herself_o with_o great_a name_n and_o swell_a title_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o we_o so_o often_o hear_v of_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n antiquity_n amplitude_n unity_n succession_n miracle_n prophecy_n and_o several_a other_o that_o their_o great_a cardinal_n set_v down_o as_o so_o many_o perpetual_a and_o never-failing_a mark_n and_o character_n to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a church_n and_o to_o assert_v his_o own_o i_o shall_v in_o this_o short_a tract_n examine_v the_o first_o of_o these_o and_o that_o i_o may_v give_v it_o all_o the_o fair_a play_n imaginable_a endeavour_v to_o represent_v it_o in_o its_o full_a force_n and_o to_o its_o best_a advantage_n bellarmin_n make_v it_o thus_o to_o speak_v for_o itself_o the_o apostle_n in_o 1_o cor._n 3.4_o make_v it_o the_o sign_n and_o mark_v of_o schismatic_n to_o be_v call_v after_o the_o name_n of_o particular_a man_n though_o of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o whether_o of_o paul_n or_o apollos_n or_o cephas_n and_o in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n the_o orthodox_n church_n be_v know_v and_o distinguish_v by_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n and_o the_o conventicle_n of_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n by_o the_o name_n of_o their_o first_o author_n and_o therefore_o since_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v by_o all_o even_o her_o bitter_a adversary_n call_v catholic_n and_o the_o several_a sect_n of_o the_o reform_a after_o the_o name_n of_o their_o particular_a doctor_n as_o luther_n calvin_n zuinglius_fw-la and_o the_o like_a it_o follow_v that_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n be_v not_o only_o a_o sure_a undoubted_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n but_o also_o that_o this_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v that_o church_n this_o be_v his_o argument_n and_o as_o much_o as_o he_o value_v his_o church_n upon_o it_o i_o can_v see_v no_o more_o in_o it_o but_o this_o that_o because_o church_n profess_v the_o true_a orthodox_n faith_n be_v ancient_o style_v catholic_n therefore_o all_o that_o have_v be_v style_v catholic_n since_o be_v their_o faith_n what_o it_o will_v must_v be_v true_a and_o orthodox_n church_n and_o because_o the_o apostle_n forbid_v christian_n to_o be_v call_v after_o the_o name_n of_o particular_a man_n though_o of_o never_o so_o great_a eminency_n in_o the_o church_n and_o those_o mention_v in_o the_o work_v of_o the_o ancient_n be_v real_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n that_o be_v so_o call_v as_o the_o valentinian_o marcionite_n montanist_n and_o other_o therefore_o all_o that_o in_o after-age_n shall_v be_v so_o nicknamed_a though_o out_o of_o malice_n and_o illwill_a by_o their_o enemy_n whilst_o they_o disow_v it_o themselves_o must_v go_v for_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n this_o be_v so_o weak_a a_o topick_n that_o i_o may_v just_o break_v off_o here_o have_v expose_v it_o sufficient_o by_o a_o bare_a represent_v of_o it_o yet_o for_o the_o reader_n be_v far_o information_n and_o satisfaction_n in_o this_o matter_n i_o shall_v proceed_v to_o show_v these_o three_o thing_n i._o in_o what_o respect_n the_o name_n of_o catholic_n be_v esteem_v by_o some_o of_o the_o father_n in_o their_o time_n a_o note_n of_o a_o catholic_n church_n and_o in_o what_o respect_n it_o will_v ever_o be_v a_o stand_a note_n of_o it_o ii_o that_o from_o the_o bare_a name_n of_o catholic_n no_o argument_n can_v be_v draw_v to_o prove_v a_o church_n to_o be_v catholic_n iii_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v egregious_o corrupt_v the_o true_a catholic_n faith_n neither_o be_v nor_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o a_o catholic_n church_n i._o in_o what_o respect_n the_o name_n of_o catholic_n be_v esteem_v by_o some_o of_o the_o father_n in_o their_o time_n a_o note_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o etc._n etc._n and_o this_o as_o evident_o appear_v from_o their_o write_n and_o even_o from_o those_o testimony_n cite_v by_o bellarmine_n be_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n that_o in_o their_o time_n be_v general_o and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o conjunction_n with_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n and_o when_o ever_o it_o be_v so_o it_o will_v be_v a_o infallible_a note_n of_o a_o catholic_n church_n the_o catholic_n faith_n be_v that_o which_o be_v deliver_v by_o christ_n himself_o to_o his_o apostle_n and_o by_o they_o to_o the_o church_n contain_v in_o those_o write_n which_o they_o by_o
reform_v they_o call_v we_o the_o reform_a therefore_o we_o be_v reform_v be_v as_o good_a a_o argument_n as_o we_o call_v they_o catholic_n therefore_o they_o be_v catholic_n in_o this_o sense_n be_v those_o word_n of_o st._n austin_n cite_v by_o bellarmine_n 4._o contr._n epist_n fundam_fw-la c._n 4._o to_o be_v understand_v that_o shall_v a_o stranger_n happen_v in_o any_o city_n to_o inquire_v even_o of_o a_o heretic_n where_o he_o may_v go_v to_o a_o catholic_n church_n the_o heretic_n will_v not_o dare_v to_o send_v he_o to_o his_o own_o house_n or_o oratory_n not_o that_o that_o heretic_n do_v believe_v that_o those_o that_o there_o be_v call_v catholic_n do_v hold_v the_o true_a catholic_n doctrine_n for_o than_o he_o can_v not_o have_v believe_v his_o own_o but_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o a_o bare_a name_n of_o distinction_n he_o direct_v he_o to_o that_o assembly_n of_o christian_n that_o be_v so_o call_v st._n austin_n seem_v here_o to_o suppose_v a_o case_n as_o if_o a_o traveller_n enter_v into_o a_o city_n where_o both_o popish_a and_o reform_a church_n be_v allow_v and_o shall_v chance_v to_o meet_v a_o protestant_n and_o of_o he_o inquire_v the_o way_n to_o a_o catholic_n church_n and_o he_o direct_v he_o to_o a_o popish_a one_o or_o a_o papist_n and_o of_o he_o inquire_v the_o way_n to_o a_o reform_a church_n and_o he_o direct_v he_o to_o a_o protestant_a one_o it_o will_v not_o therefore_o follow_v that_o either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o do_v believe_v either_o church_n to_o answer_v and_o correspond_v with_o its_o name_n that_o the_o popish_a be_v catholic_n or_o the_o protestant_n reform_v but_o that_o they_o be_v word_n of_o vulgar_a use_n whereby_o they_o may_v be_v know_v from_o one_o another_o but_o not_o the_o true_a church_n from_o the_o false_a four_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o because_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n in_o that_o time_n when_o it_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o conjunction_n with_o the_o catholic_n faith_n be_v a_o sure_a note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n it_o must_v always_o be_v so_o even_o when_o the_o name_n and_o thing_n be_v part_v it_o be_v not_o long_o before_o the_o christian_a church_n become_v miserable_o tear_v and_o rend_v asunder_o divide_v into_o many_o and_o some_o very_a great_a body_n all_o pretend_v to_o catholicism_n by_o what_o mark_v now_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n to_o be_v know_v not_o by_o the_o name_n sure_o when_o all_o party_n lay_v claim_v to_o it_o and_o the_o gross_a heretic_n such_o as_o the_o manichaean_o themselves_z as_o st._n austin_n tell_v we_o who_o have_v the_o least_o to_o show_v for_o it_o covet_v and_o glory_v in_o it_o have_v never_o any_o heretic_n or_o scismatic_o be_v style_v catholic_n nor_o ever_o any_o orthodox_n style_v heretic_n the_o greek_a church_n be_v call_v catholic_n and_o yet_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v have_v she_o a_o heretical_a one_o the_o donatist_n appropriate_v to_o themselves_o that_o ample_a title_n and_o yet_o st._n austin_n think_v they_o no_o better_a than_o shcismaticks_n the_o arrian_n call_v themselves_o catholic_n and_o the_o orthodox_n homousian_o and_o athanasian_o but_o neither_o the_o one_o be_v the_o more_o nor_o the_o other_o the_o less_o catholic_n for_o what_o they_o be_v call_v truth_n be_v always_o the_o same_o and_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n remain_v unalterable_a let_v man_n fix_v on_o they_o what_o name_n they_o please_v by_o this_o rule_n than_o be_v the_o true_a church_n to_o be_v know_v not_o because_o it_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_n for_o that_o a_o church_n may_v do_v and_o yet_o be_v guilty_a of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n but_o because_o it_o profess_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o then_o though_o it_o be_v in_o name_n heretic_n it_o be_v in_o reality_n catholic_n this_o be_v lactantius_n rule_n to_o discern_v the_o true_a church_n by_o the_o true_a religion_n that_o church_n alone_o retinet_fw-la instir_v lib._n 4._o c._n ult_n sola_fw-la catholica_fw-la est_fw-la quae_fw-la verum_fw-la cultum_fw-la retinet_fw-la say_v he_o be_v catholic_n that_o retain_v the_o true_a worship_n of_o god._n and_o st._n austin_n in_o his_o dispute_n with_o the_o donatist_n where_o the_o true_a church_n be_v appeal_v to_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o only_a infallible_a judge_n 2._o non_fw-la audiamus_fw-la haec_fw-la dico_fw-la haec_fw-la dicis_fw-la sed_fw-la audiamus_fw-la haec_fw-la dicit_fw-la dominus_fw-la etc._n etc._n ibi_fw-la quaeramus_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la epist_n 166._o de_fw-la unit_fw-la eccl._n c._n 2._o among_o many_o other_o to_o this_o purpose_n he_o have_v these_o word_n i_o say_v this_o and_o thou_o say_v that_o but_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n 5._o again_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o because_o the_o be_v call_v after_o the_o name_n of_o particular_a man_n in_o that_o age_n when_o all_o so_o call_v be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n corrupt_v in_o the_o faith_n be_v a_o sure_a brand_n of_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n it_o must_v ever_o be_v so_o may_v not_o name_n and_o title_n be_v unjust_o and_o malicious_o impose_v if_o the_o church_n of_o the_o reform_a must_v go_v for_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n mere_o because_o they_o be_v distinguish_v by_o the_o name_n of_o those_o man_n that_o be_v the_o first_o and_o most_o eminent_a instrument_n in_o that_o bless_a work_n as_o of_o lutheran_n calvinist_n zuinglians_n &_o the_o like_a be_v there_o not_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o the_o several_a order_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o their_o particular_a founder_n as_o the_o benedictines_n franciscan_n dominican_n jansenist_n and_o molinist_n and_o other_o be_v esteem_v so_o too_o if_o there_o be_v any_o difference_n the_o advantage_n of_o reason_n be_v on_o our_o side_n since_o the_o reform_a assume_v not_o those_o name_n to_o themselves_o and_o though_o they_o deserve_o honour_v the_o memory_n of_o those_o man_n and_o with_o thankful_a heart_n embrace_v the_o reformation_n god_n be_v please_v by_o their_o ministry_n to_o make_v in_o the_o church_n yet_o do_v they_o by_o no_o mean_n affect_v to_o be_v call_v after_o their_o name_n they_o own_v no_o name_n but_o christian_a or_o catholic_n when_o it_o signify_v person_n adhere_v to_o the_o true_a catholic_n faith_n the_o other_o be_v nickname_n fasten_v on_o they_o by_o their_o adversary_n out_o of_o scorn_n or_o malice_n to_o represent_v they_o to_o the_o world_n as_o far_o as_o they_o be_v able_a as_o so_o many_o schismatic_n from_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o as_o have_v other_o leader_n than_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n but_o those_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v denominate_v from_o their_o particular_a founder_n give_v themselves_o those_o appellation_n seem_v to_o prefer_v they_o before_o that_o true_o catholic_n one_o of_o christian_n which_o while_n with_o some_o neglect_n they_o leave_v to_o the_o common_a people_n they_o glory_n and_o pride_n themselves_o in_o the_o other_o so_o that_o if_o this_o note_n of_o a_o heretic_n be_v valid_a it_o turn_v with_o great_a force_n against_o themselves_o who_o be_v real_o guilty_a of_o it_o and_o not_o against_o we_o who_o they_o will_v make_v guilty_a of_o it_o but_o be_v not_o iii_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v egregious_o corrupt_v the_o catholic_n faith_n or_o religion_n neither_o be_v nor_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o a_o catholic_n church_n whether_o she_o be_v guilty_a of_o this_o or_o no_o will_v be_v best_a see_v by_o compare_v her_o doctrine_n in_o several_a point_n with_o that_o deliver_v by_o christ_n and_o leave_v upon_o record_n by_o his_o holy_a apostle_n for_o though_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v not_o allow_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o whole_a and_o a_o perfect_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n yet_o they_o acknowledge_v they_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o grant_v that_o they_o must_v acknowledge_v that_o all_o those_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n that_o be_v forbid_v by_o they_o be_v corruption_n and_o depravation_n of_o it_o let_v we_o then_o bring_v their_o faith_n to_o the_o touchstone_n how_o read_v thou_o the_o scripture_n say_v 1685._o see_v discourse_n of_o the_o object_n of_o religious_a worship_n 1685._o thou_o shall_v worship_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v mat._n 4.10_o which_o word_n evident_o appropriate_v all_o kind_n and_o all_o degree_n of_o religious_a worship_n unto_o god_n they_o be_v a_o answer_n to_o the_o devil_n temptation_n who_o require_v but_o the_o low_a degree_n the_o devil_n acknowledge_v that_o the_o right_n he_o have_v of_o dispose_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n to_o be_v only_o derivative_a not_o natural_a they_o be_v deliver_v to_o i_o at_o the_o same_o time_n confess_v himself_o not_o to_o be_v the_o supreme_a god_n and_o consequent_o can_v be_v suppose_v
novel_a name_n and_o dispute_v that_o their_o religion_n be_v the_o true_a because_o they_o be_v strengthen_v and_o defend_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o antiquity_n so_o we_o read_v in_o arnobius_n 2._o arnobius_n lib._n 2._o and_o in_o symmachus_n arcad._n symmachus_n ad_fw-la valentin_n theodos_fw-la &_o arcad._n and_o prudentius_n martyris_fw-la prudentius_n in_o ago_o romani_fw-la martyris_fw-la and_o many_o other_o who_o i_o omit_v content_v myself_o with_o st._n austin_n alone_o because_o he_o give_v a_o most_o pertinent_a answer_n to_o this_o poor_a pretence_n which_o will_v as_o well_o serve_v we_o against_o the_o papist_n as_o it_o do_v he_o against_o the_o pagan_n cxiv_o pagan_n quaest_n ex_fw-la vet._n &_o novo_fw-la testam_fw-la ent_a q._n cxiv_o who_o contend_v that_o what_o they_o hold_v be_v true_a because_o of_o its_o antiquity_n as_o if_o say_v he_o antiquity_n or_o ancient_a custom_n shall_v carry_v it_o against_o the_o truth_n thus_o murderer_n adulterer_n and_o all_o wicked_a man_n may_v defend_v their_o crime_n for_o they_o be_v ancient_a practice_n and_o begin_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world._n though_o from_o hence_o they_o ought_v rather_o to_o understand_v their_o error_n because_o that_o which_o be_v reprehensible_a and_o filthy_a be_v thereby_o prove_v to_o have_v be_v ill_o begin_v etc._n etc._n nor_o can_v it_o be_v make_v honest_a and_o unreprovable_a by_o have_v be_v do_v long_o ago_o but_o this_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o devil_n craft_n and_o subtilty_n as_o he_o excellent_o observe_v in_o the_o same_o place_n who_o as_o he_o invent_v those_o false_a worship_n and_o sprinkle_v some_o juggle_a trick_n to_o draw_v man_n into_o they_o so_o he_o take_v such_o course_n that_o in_o process_n of_o time_n the_o fallacy_n be_v commend_v and_o the_o filthy_a invention_n be_v excuse_v by_o be_v derive_v from_o antiquity_n for_o by_o long_a custom_n that_o begin_v not_o to_o seem_v filthy_a which_o be_v so_o in_o itself_o the_o irrational_a vulgar_a begin_v to_o worship_n doemons_n or_o dead_a man_n who_o appear_v to_o they_o as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v god_n which_o worship_n be_v draw_v down_o into_o custom_n of_o long_a continuance_n think_v thereby_o to_o be_v defend_v as_o if_o it_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o reason_n whereas_o the_o reason_n of_o truth_n be_v not_o from_o custom_n which_o be_v from_o antiquity_n but_o from_o god_n who_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v god_n not_o by_o long_a continuance_n or_o antiquity_n but_o by_o eternity_n let_v this_o be_v apply_v to_o our_o present_a business_n and_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v that_o bare_a antiquity_n can_v be_v a_o note_n of_o truth_n for_o there_o be_v very_o ancient_a error_n which_o be_v so_o evident_a that_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n such_o a_o man_n as_o bellarmin_n be_v shall_v let_v this_o pass_v the_o muster_n among_o the_o note_n he_o reckon_v up_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o church_n which_o he_o can_v intend_v for_o no_o more_o than_o to_o make_v a_o show_n not_o for_o any_o substantial_a service_n of_o which_o this_o be_v a_o demonstration_n that_o he_o have_v no_o soon_o name_v antiqvity_n as_o the_o second_o note_n of_o the_o church_n but_o discern_v it_o will_v stand_v he_o in_o no_o stead_n he_o immediate_o set_v it_o aside_o and_o cunning_o slide_v to_o another_o thing_n with_o which_o he_o endeavour_v to_o blend_v and_o confound_v it_o for_o thus_o he_o argue_v v._n l._n four_o de_fw-fr ecclesia_fw-la c._n v._n without_o doubt_n the_o true_a church_n be_v ancient_a than_o the_o false_a as_o god_n be_v before_o the_o devil_n and_o consequent_o we_o read_v the_o good_a seed_n be_v sow_o first_o before_o the_o tare_n but_o who_o do_v not_o see_v that_o these_o two_o thing_n be_v wide_o different_a the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o antiquity_n and_o priority_n that_o which_o be_v ancient_a and_o that_o which_o be_v first_o whatsoever_o be_v first_o be_v undoubted_o true_a but_o whatsoever_o be_v ancient_a be_v not_o always_o so_o unless_o it_o be_v of_o such_o antiquity_n that_o it_o be_v also_o first_o there_o be_v a_o double_a antiquity_n therefore_o one_o in_o respect_n of_o we_o the_o other_o absolute_a and_o in_o itself_o this_o last_o sort_n of_o antiquity_n be_v the_o same_o with_o what_o be_v first_o unto_o which_o we_o be_v desirous_a to_o go_v to_o which_o we_o be_v willing_a to_o stand_v and_o by_o which_o we_o will_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o rule_n which_o tertullian_n lay_v down_o in_o several_a of_o his_o book_n thirty_o book_n l._n four_o contra_fw-la martion_n c._n 5._o adu._n praxeam_n c._n 2._o de_fw-fr prescript_n c._n thirty_o we_o will_v fain_o bring_v our_o cause_n and_o church_n to_o be_v try_v that_o be_v true_a which_o be_v first_o that_o first_o which_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n that_o from_o the_o beginning_n which_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n that_o from_o the_o apostle_n which_o in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v most_o sacred_a viz._n that_o which_o they_o read_v in_o their_o holy_a write_n this_o be_v our_o antiquity_n as_o he_o speak_v in_o his_o famous_a apology_n praestructa_fw-la divinae_fw-la literaturae_fw-la xlvii_o literaturae_fw-la apologia_fw-la c._n xlvii_o build_v before_o upon_o the_o divine_a learning_n this_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o come_v from_o christ_n transmit_v to_o we_o by_o his_o companion_n to_o who_o all_o those_o who_o speak_v other_o way_n will_v be_v find_v to_o be_v of_o late_a date_n but_o to_o this_o they_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v by_o no_o mean_n agree_v they_o do_v not_o like_a to_o be_v try_v only_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v the_o true_a antiquity_n that_o be_v undoubted_o first_o before_o all_o other_o tradition_n a_o very_a bad_a sign_n this_o a_o infallible_a note_n all_o be_v not_o right_a among_o they_o that_o they_o dare_v not_o abide_v by_o the_o scripture_n but_o cry_v up_o other_o tradition_n that_o be_v boast_v of_o what_o be_v late_a not_o what_o be_v first_o and_o what_o be_v after_o the_o first_o though_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v of_o great_a antiquity_n can_v certain_o be_v rely_v on_o because_o there_o be_v error_n and_o heresy_n so_o ancient_a that_o they_o spring_v up_o present_o after_o the_o first_o truth_n mere_a antiquity_n therefore_o be_v not_o a_o good_a proof_n for_o though_o the_o devil_n be_v not_o first_o yet_o he_o be_v of_o great_a antiquity_n be_v the_o old_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o ancient_a serpent_n who_o be_v a_o liar_n as_o well_o as_o a_o murderer_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o be_v so_o crafty_a as_o in_o process_n of_o time_n to_o make_v use_n of_o this_o argument_n to_o prove_v he_o be_v the_o ancient_n of_o day_n that_o be_v god._n and_o if_o there_o have_v not_o be_v something_o else_o whereby_o he_o may_v have_v be_v discover_v to_o be_v a_o serpent_n who_o can_v have_v contradict_v he_o or_o confute_v his_o doctrine_n and_o worship_n if_o they_o have_v be_v to_o be_v try_v by_o bare_a antiquity_n which_o be_v a_o proof_n so_o insufficient_a that_o god_n himself_o as_o you_o hear_v before_o out_o of_o st._n austin_n be_v not_o prove_v to_o be_v god_n by_o antiquity_n but_o by_o eternity_n truth_n and_o error_n be_v bear_v so_o near_o together_o that_o after_o a_o long_a tract_n of_o time_n they_o can_v not_o be_v distinguish_v mere_o by_o their_o age._n no_o soon_o be_v man_n create_v but_o this_o serpent_n by_o his_o subtlety_n beguile_v eve._n and_o immediate_o after_o our_o redemption_n he_o attempt_v again_o to_o corrupt_v man_n mind_n from_o the_o simplicity_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n 2_o cor._n xi_o 3._o 1_o thess_n iii._o 5._o and_o according_o as_o there_o be_v a_o church_n of_o christ_n so_o there_o be_v together_o therewith_o a_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n rev._n three_o 9_o there_o be_v depth_n of_o satan_n also_o and_o a_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n which_o wrought_v even_o in_o the_o apostle_n day_n as_o well_o as_o a_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n and_o the_o deep_a thing_n of_o god._n which_o wicked_a doctrine_n run_v down_o to_o posterity_n make_v use_v at_o length_n of_o the_o plea_n of_o antiquity_n to_o give_v they_o countenance_n and_o support_n nor_o can_v it_o be_v deny_v though_o it_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v a_o mere_a deceit_n for_o it_o be_v refute_v by_o the_o father_n in_o such_o remarkable_a word_n as_o these_o which_o give_v a_o deadly_a blow_n to_o the_o like_a plea_n of_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n custom_n without_o truth_n be_v but_o the_o antiquity_n of_o error_n and_o there_o be_v a_o short_a way_n for_o religious_a and_o simple_a mind_n to_o find_v out_o what_o be_v truth_n for_o if_o we_o return_v to_o the_o beginning_n and_o original_a of_o divine_a tradition_n human_a error_n cease_v thither_o let_v
we_o return_v to_o our_o lord_n be_v original_a the_o evangelical_n beginning_n the_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o hence_o let_v the_o reason_n of_o our_o act_n arise_v from_o whence_o order_n and_o the_o beginning_n arise_v if_o therefore_o christ_n alone_o be_v to_o be_v hear_v we_o ought_v not_o to_o regard_v what_o another_o before_o we_o think_v fit_a to_o be_v do_v but_o what_o christ_n who_o be_v before_o all_o first_o do_v for_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o follow_v the_o custom_n of_o man_n but_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n since_o god_n himself_o speak_v thus_o by_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n in_o vain_a do_v they_o worship_v i_o teach_v the_o commandment_n and_o doctrine_n of_o men._n which_o very_a word_n our_o lord_n again_o repeat_v in_o the_o gospel_n you_o reject_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n that_o you_o may_v establish_v your_o own_o tradition_n thus_o s._n cyprian_n oxon._n cyprian_n epist_n lxiii_o ad_fw-la caecilium_fw-la fratrem_fw-la &_o lxxiu_o add_v pompeium_n ed._n oxon._n with_o who_o tertullian_n 1._o tertullian_n l._n de_fw-fr veland_n virg._n c._n 1._o who_o he_o be_v wont_a to_o call_v his_o master_n agree_v in_o many_o memorable_a say_n no_o body_n can_v prescribe_v against_o the_o truth_n neither_o space_n of_o time_n nor_o the_o patronage_n of_o person_n nor_o the_o privilege_n of_o country_n from_o which_o thing_n indeed_o custom_n have_v get_v a_o beginning_n by_o ignorance_n or_o simplicity_n and_o be_v grow_v strong_a by_o succession_n plead_v against_o truth_n but_o our_o lord_n christ_n call_v himself_o the_o truth_n not_o custom_n nor_o do_v novelty_n so_o much_o confute_v heresy_n as_o truth_n whatsoever_o be_v against_o truth_n that_o will_v be_v heresy_n even_o old_a custom_n truth_n do_v not_o stand_v xxviii_o stand_v l._n de_fw-fr anima_fw-la c._n xxviii_o in_o need_n of_o old_a custom_n to_o make_v it_o be_v believe_v nor_o do_v heresy_n fear_v the_o charge_n of_o novelty_n that_o which_o be_v plain_o false_a be_v make_v generous_a by_o antiquity_n for_o why_o shall_v i_o not_o call_v that_o false_a who_o proof_n be_v false_a why_o shall_v i_o believe_v pythagoras_n who_o tell_v lie_n that_o he_o may_v be_v believe_v i_o omit_v all_o the_o rest_n have_v say_v enough_o to_o show_v that_o if_o antiquity_n itself_o be_v to_o be_v credit_v we_o ought_v not_o to_o depend_v upon_o antiquity_n alone_o but_o seek_v for_o ancient_a truth_n which_o lead_v i_o to_o the_o second_o thing_n i_o undertake_v to_o show_v that_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n vain_o pretend_v to_o true_a antiquity_n i.e._n to_o ancient_a truth_n ii_o the_o antiquity_n of_o a_o church_n do_v not_o consist_v in_o the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o place_n where_o it_o be_v seat_v for_o a_o new_a worship_n may_v come_v into_o a_o ancient_a place_n of_o worship_n as_o the_o new_a altar_n of_o ahaz_n be_v introduce_v into_o the_o temple_n at_o jerusalem_n where_o he_o sacrifice_v to_o the_o god_n of_o damascus_n 2_o king._n xuj_o 2_o chron._n xxviii_o 23_o nor_o do_v it_o consist_v mere_o in_o the_o antiquity_n of_o its_o founder_n for_o the_o apostle_n found_v many_o church_n which_o have_v all_o the_o same_o title_n to_o antiquity_n in_o this_o regard_n and_o yet_o continue_v not_o such_o church_n as_o they_o leave_v they_o but_o decay_a some_o of_o they_o so_o fast_o that_o what_o truth_n and_o goodness_n remain_v among_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o die_v even_o before_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v dead_a rev._n three_o 2._o but_o it_o be_v true_a antiquity_n consist_v in_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o ancient_a truth_n entire_a and_o uncorrupted_a which_o it_o receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o which_o make_v it_o at_o first_o to_o be_v a_o church_n those_o thing_n be_v true_o ancient_a which_o persist_v in_o the_o same_o state_n after_o a_o long_a tract_n of_o time_n wherein_o they_o be_v at_o their_o beginning_n for_o if_o they_o have_v suffer_v any_o change_n in_o that_o which_o belong_v to_o their_o be_v and_o constitution_n they_o have_v lose_v their_o antiquity_n and_o become_v another_o thing_n than_o they_o be_v at_o the_o first_o now_o to_o know_v this_o we_o must_v inquire_v into_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o and_o understand_v for_o instance_n what_o it_o be_v that_o make_v a_o society_n to_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god._n and_o all_o agree_v it_o be_v the_o christian_a truth_n in_o which_o if_o it_o have_v suffer_v alteration_n that_o be_v do_v not_o hold_v the_o same_o christian_a doctrine_n it_o do_v at_o the_o beginning_n but_o have_v introduce_v error_n and_o lie_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o ancient_a truth_n it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o church_n it_o be_v at_o first_o and_o therefore_o have_v not_o that_o mark_n of_o true_a antiquity_n which_o will_v prove_v it_o to_o be_v such_o as_o it_o pretend_v now_o that_o this_o be_v the_o case_n of_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v evident_a by_o that_o alteration_n they_o have_v make_v in_o the_o ancient_a creed_n unto_o which_o they_o have_v add_v as_o many_o more_o article_n as_o there_o be_v at_o the_o first_o and_o thereby_o make_v such_o a_o change_n in_o their_o church_n for_o a_o change_n be_v make_v by_o add_v as_o well_o as_o take_v away_o as_o make_v it_o not_o to_o be_v the_o same_o ancient_a church_n which_o the_o apostle_n found_v at_o the_o beginning_n this_o charge_n they_o have_v no_o way_n to_o avoid_v nor_o can_v by_o any_o other_o mean_v maintain_v that_o they_o be_v such_o a_o ancient_a church_n as_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n settle_v but_o by_o this_o ratiocination_n as_o bellarmin_n call_v it_o that_o in_o all_o great_a change_n of_o religion_n these_o six_o thing_n may_v be_v ever_o show_v 1._o the_o author_n of_o that_o change._n 2._o the_o new_a doctrine_n that_o be_v bring_v in_o 3._o the_o time_n when_o it_o begin_v 4._o the_o place_n where_o 5._o who_o oppose_v it_o 6._o and_o who_o join_v themselves_o to_o it_o none_o of_o which_o can_v be_v show_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o therefore_o there_o have_v be_v no_o change_n at_o all_o make_v in_o it_o but_o it_o remain_v the_o same_o it_o be_v at_o first_o without_o any_o alteration_n which_o be_v a_o reason_v build_v upon_o ground_n so_o notorious_o false_a that_o it_o scarce_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o a_o poor_a piece_n of_o sophistry_n 1._o for_o first_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o all_o history_n and_o experience_n which_o show_v we_o there_o have_v be_v great_a change_n the_o author_n and_o the_o beginning_n etc._n etc._n of_o which_o can_v now_o be_v know_v though_o no_o man_n can_v doubt_v there_o have_v be_v a_o alteration_n make_v for_o the_o body_n spiritual_a and_o civil_a too_o be_v like_o the_o body_n natural_a in_o which_o as_o there_o be_v some_o disease_n which_o make_v such_o a_o violent_a and_o sudden_a assault_n that_o one_o may_v say_v at_o what_o moment_n they_o begin_v so_o there_o be_v other_o which_o grow_v so_o insensible_o and_o by_o such_o slow_a degree_n that_o none_o can_v tell_v when_o the_o first_o alteration_n be_v make_v and_o by_o what_o accident_n from_o a_o good_a habit_n of_o body_n to_o a_o bad_a thus_o we_o be_v sure_o a_o man_n be_v in_o a_o deep_a consumption_n when_o we_o see_v he_o wear_v away_o to_o skin_n and_o bone_n though_o no_o body_n can_v tell_v the_o precise_a time_n when_o nor_o by_o what_o mean_n nor_o where_o and_o in_o what_o company_n his_o blood_n begin_v to_o be_v taint_v and_o thus_o we_o be_v sure_o there_o be_v a_o gangrene_n as_o st_n paul_n call_v heresy_n when_o we_o see_v it_o corrode_v the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n though_o it_o creep_v in_o so_o secret_o at_o the_o first_o and_o so_o indiscernable_o that_o it_o be_v not_o suspect_v nor_o can_v always_o be_v trace_v to_o its_o first_o occasion_n and_o original_a no_o the_o tare_n in_o the_o field_n which_o be_v another_o example_n whereby_o our_o lord_n himself_o illustrate_v this_o matter_n have_v take_v root_n before_o they_o be_v espy_v for_o they_o be_v sow_o in_o the_o night_n while_o man_n sleep_v and_o can_v take_v no_o notice_n of_o it_o so_o that_o all_o that_o can_v be_v know_v be_v this_o that_o his_o enemy_n have_v do_v it_o that_o be_v the_o tare_n be_v not_o from_o our_o saviour_n nor_o be_v first_o sow_o but_o be_v of_o a_o late_a and_o quite_o different_a original_a but_o by_o what_o particular_a instrument_n the_o enemy_n sow_v they_o at_o what_o hour_n of_o the_o night_n by_o what_o hand_n and_o when_o do_v not_o appear_v for_o the_o matter_n be_v carry_v so_o secret_o and_o in_o the_o dark_a that_o the_o servant_n who_o know_v of_o the_o sow_v of_o the_o good_a seed_n in_o the_o field_n wonder_v to_o see_v the_o bad_a and_o ask_v
first_o five_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n to_o refer_v we_o to_o the_o last_o five_o hundred_o which_o be_v to_o confess_v the_o novelty_n of_o their_o most_o belove_a doctrine_n and_o consequent_o to_o quit_v this_o note_n of_o antiquity_n as_o in_o truth_n he_o plain_o do_v in_o that_o book_n where_o be_v press_v with_o this_o argument_n that_o no_o such_o power_n be_v claim_v in_o the_o first_o time_n of_o the_o church_n he_o answer_v 69._o answer_v ib._n cap._n 3._o p._n 69._o that_o he_o have_v not_o right_a conception_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n who_o admit_v nothing_o but_o what_o he_o read_v express_o write_v or_o do_v in_o the_o ancient_a church_n for_o the_o church_n of_o late_a time_n have_v power_n not_o only_o to_o explain_v and_o declare_v but_o constitute_v and_o command_v those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o faith_n and_o manner_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v they_o need_v not_o trouble_v themselves_o about_o antiquity_n for_o they_o can_v make_v article_n of_o faith_n now_o which_o be_v not_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o beginning_n 2._o we_o have_v often_o also_o tell_v they_o by_o what_o step_n image_n creep_v into_o the_o church_n for_o they_o remain_v at_o first_o only_o in_o private_a house_n for_o ornament_n or_o for_o commemoration_n and_o not_o uncensured_a there_o be_v above_o 300_o year_n past_a before_o they_o come_v into_o any_o church_n and_o then_o not_o without_o opposition_n and_o for_o this_o end_n only_o to_o be_v of_o a_o historical_a use_n to_o remind_v people_n of_o thing_n past_a which_o improve_v in_o 300_o year_n more_o to_o a_o rhetorical_a use_n as_o we_o may_v call_v it_o to_o stir_v up_o devotion_n in_o the_o people_n for_o which_o purpose_n gregory_n the_o great_a fancy_v they_o be_v profitable_a and_o though_o he_o by_o no_o mean_n allow_v they_o to_o be_v worship_v yet_o he_o think_v the_o people_n may_v look_v upon_o they_o and_o worship_n god_n before_o they_o and_o this_o look_v upon_o they_o to_o help_v devotion_n be_v improve_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o second_o nicene_n council_n into_o a_o downright_a worship_v of_o they_o which_o will_v not_o pass_v in_o these_o western_a part_n for_o good_a doctrine_n and_o when_o at_o last_o we_o know_v and_o have_v tell_v they_o by_o what_o step_n this_o new_a worship_n advance_v hither_o and_o grow_v to_o a_o great_a degree_n of_o religious_a respect_n than_o that_o nicene_n council_n admit_v the_o most_o zealous_a defender_n of_o it_o can_v not_o agree_v about_o it_o nor_o do_v they_o know_v what_o to_o make_v of_o it_o to_o this_o day_n we_o can_v tell_v they_o of_o other_o thing_n that_o be_v much_o new_a for_o it_o be_v but_o a_o little_a more_o than_o 100_o year_n since_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v decree_v to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god._n but_o this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v that_o they_o vain_o boast_v of_o antiquity_n which_o be_v only_o ancient_a error_n and_o some_o of_o it_o not_o very_o ancient_a neither_o as_o for_o ancient_a truth_n that_o be_v on_o our_o side_n who_o they_o most_o injurious_o accuse_v of_o follow_v novelty_n iii_o for_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o law_n establish_v be_v the_o true_a primitive_a christianity_n in_o nothing_o new_a unless_o it_o be_v in_o reject_v all_o that_o novelty_n which_o have_v be_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n but_o they_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o that_o for_o if_o they_o have_v not_o introduce_v new_a article_n we_o shall_v not_o have_v have_v occasion_n for_o such_o article_n of_o religion_n as_o condemn_v they_o which_o can_v indeed_o be_v old_a because_o the_o doctrine_n they_o condemn_v be_v new_a though_o the_o principle_n upon_o which_o we_o condemn_v they_o be_v as_o old_a as_o christianity_n we_o esteem_v all_o to_o be_v new_a which_o be_v not_o from_o the_o beginning_n for_o as_o for_o our_o positive_a doctrine_n polydore_v himself_o have_v give_v a_o true_a account_n of_o it_o and_o make_v it_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o sect_n call_v evangelick_n as_o he_o speak_v increase_v so_o marvellous_o in_o a_o short_a time_n because_o they_o affirm_v that_o no_o law_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v which_o appertain_v to_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n but_o that_o which_o christ_n or_o the_o apostle_n have_v give_v inventoribus_fw-la give_v l._n viij_o cap._n 4._o de_fw-la rerum_fw-la inventoribus_fw-la and_o who_o dare_v say_v that_o this_o be_v a_o new_a religion_n which_o be_v as_o old_a as_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n with_o who_o whosoever_o agree_v they_o be_v true_o ancient_a church_n though_o of_o no_o long_a stand_n than_o yesterday_o as_o they_o that_o disagree_v with_o they_o be_v new_a though_o they_o can_v run_v up_o their_o pedigree_n to_o the_o very_a apostle_n thus_o tertulian_n xxxii_o tertulian_n l._n the_o prescript_n c._n xxxii_o discourse_n with_o who_o word_n something_o contract_v i_o shall_v conclude_v as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o a_o church_n when_o it_o be_v divers_a from_o or_o contrary_a unto_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n show_v it_o not_o to_o be_v a_o apostolic_a church_n though_o it_o pretend_v to_o be_v found_v by_o a_o apostle_n so_o those_o church_n that_o can_v produce_v any_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o apostolical_a man_n for_o their_o founder_n be_v much_o late_a and_o new_o constitute_v yet_o conspire_v in_o the_o same_o faith_n be_v nevertheless_o to_o be_v account_v apostolic_a church_n because_o of_o the_o consangvinity_n of_o doctrine_n the_o end_n london_n print_v for_o richard_n chiswell_n at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n 1687._o the_o three_o note_n of_o the_o church_n examine_v viz_o duration_n tertia_fw-la nota_fw-la est_fw-la duratio_fw-la diuturna_fw-la nec_fw-la unquam_fw-la interrupta_fw-la bellarm_n l._n four_o c._n vi_fw-la imprimatur_fw-la apr._n 30._o 1687._o gvil._n needham_n how_o far_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v behold_v to_o the_o industry_n of_o some_o learned_a man_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o the_o note_n they_o give_v of_o a_o church_n be_v not_o my_o business_n at_o present_a to_o examine_v but_o those_o of_o the_o reform_a religion_n must_v acknowledge_v themselves_o oblige_v to_o they_o for_o so_o frank_o quit_v those_o character_n which_o be_v essential_a to_o every_o true_a church_n and_o for_o take_v up_o with_o such_o as_o either_o apparent_o belong_v not_o to_o their_o church_n or_o belong_v to_o other_o church_n as_o well_o as_o they_o or_o last_o such_o as_o may_v be_v find_v in_o a_o false_a church_n as_o well_o as_o a_o true_a this_o may_v easy_o be_v prove_v against_o they_o through_o the_o fifteen_o note_n which_o be_v offer_v by_o they_o to_o the_o world_n but_o i_o shall_v content_v myself_o to_o give_v a_o instance_n of_o it_o in_o the_o note_n of_o duration_n which_o be_v make_v by_o they_o a_o necessary_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n in_o prosecution_n of_o which_o i_o shall_v consider_v i._n what_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o term_n duration_n ii_o how_o far_o duration_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n iii_o whether_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v a_o sufficient_a title_n to_o this_o character_n character_n i._o duration_n according_a to_o bellarmin_n be_v the_o continuance_n of_o a_o church_n throughout_o all_o time_n without_o interruption_n and_o he_o add_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v so_o call_v not_o only_o because_o it_o always_o have_v be_v but_o also_o because_o it_o always_o will_v be_v so_o that_o this_o duration_n do_v include_v in_o it_o these_o three_o thing_n 1._o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n from_o the_o beginning_n 2._o the_o continuance_n of_o that_o church_n to_o the_o end._n 3._o the_o continuance_n of_o that_o church_n from_o the_o beginning_n to_o the_o end_n without_o interruption_n let_v we_o now_o see_v how_o he_o apply_v it_o to_o the_o case_n it_o be_v evident_a say_v he_o that_o our_o church_n have_v continue_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n hitherto_o or_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n it_o have_v endure_v from_o christ_n to_o this_o year_n 1557._o the_o year_n when_o he_o write_v this_o but_o for_o all_o his_o beginning_n its_o evident_a there_o be_v no_o proof_n of_o what_o he_o affirm_v and_o his_o assertion_n be_v very_o insufficient_a 1._o that_o he_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o his_o church_n and_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o true_a church_n but_o he_o it_o be_v evident_a our_o church_n etc._n etc._n 2._o that_o he_o have_v omit_v two_o main_a branch_n of_o his_o duration_n viz._n that_o part_n of_o it_o which_o be_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n which_o be_v
more_o evident_o prove_v to_o be_v no_o true_a catholic_n than_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a communion_n may_v in_o all_o those_o article_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v peculiar_a to_o themselves_o for_o as_o to_o point_n of_o mere_a belief_n how_o much_o more_o than_o the_o apostle_n creed_n can_v they_o show_v we_o to_o have_v be_v receive_v always_o every_o where_o and_o by_o all_o christian_n but_o as_o for_o that_o large_a addition_n of_o tridentine_a article_n annex_v to_o that_o creed_n by_o p._n pius_n the_o four_o no_o unbiased_a person_n can_v believe_v they_o have_v ever_o do_v any_o thing_n like_o prove_v that_o any_o of_o they_o have_v be_v receive_v always_o and_o much_o less_o every_o where_n and_o by_o all_o those_o who_o themselves_o own_o for_o catholic_n christian_n 4._o by_o this_o note_n of_o a_o catholic_n no_o society_n of_o christian_n can_v bid_v so_o fair_a for_o catholicism_n as_o the_o reform_a church_n but_o especial_o the_o church_n of_o england_n who_o avow_a principle_n it_o be_v to_o receive_v nothing_o as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o what_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 6._o artic._n 6._o or_o may_v be_v prove_v thereby_o nor_o do_v she_o embrace_v any_o one_o doctrine_n as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o what_o be_v clear_o express_v in_o those_o book_n of_o who_o canonicalness_n there_o never_o be_v the_o least_o dispute_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n second_o i_o proceed_v to_o show_v that_o if_o we_o shall_v acknowledge_v this_o to_o be_v a_o true_a note_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n instead_o of_o enable_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o make_v good_a her_o pretention_n of_o so_o be_v it_o will_v destroy_v it_o and_o instead_o of_o do_v disservice_n to_o the_o reform_a church_n it_o will_v do_v they_o excellent_a service_n and_o be_v a_o certain_a argument_n of_o their_o be_v true_a part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o 1._o i_o will_v show_v that_o it_o will_v not_o at_o all_o advantage_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o that_o her_o pretention_n and_o therefore_o can_v do_v we_o no_o prejudice_n the_o cardinal_n prove_v 1._o that_o his_o church_n begin_v to_o fructify_v throughout_o the_o world_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n from_o these_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n col._n 1.6_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v come_v unto_o you_o as_o it_o be_v in_o all_o the_o world_n and_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n as_o it_o do_v also_o in_o you_o etc._n etc._n but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o his_o church_n be_v the_o gospel_n bring_v forth_o fruit_n in_o all_o the_o world_n the_o same_o thing_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n so_o do_v 2._o he_o add_v the_o authority_n of_o several_a father_n for_o this_o church_n be_v spread_v in_o their_o time_n all_o over_o the_o then_o know_a world_n but_o give_v we_o none_o of_o their_o say_n except_o st._n prosper_n the_o first_o father_n he_o cite_v be_v st._n irenaeus_n in_o the_o 3d_o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n 53._o edit_fw-la paris_n p._n 53._o but_o the_o father_n here_o only_o say_v that_o this_o faith_n which_o he_o sum_v up_o immediate_o before_o and_o be_v but_o the_o chief_a part_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n the_o church_n disseminated_a throughout_o the_o world_n diligent_o preserve_v as_o if_o it_o be_v confine_v but_o to_o one_o house_n but_o how_o do_v this_o concern_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v not_o once_o mention_v with_o other_o here_o particular_o name_v except_o we_o can_v be_v make_v to_o believe_v that_o wheresoever_o the_o word_n church_n be_v find_v that_o church_n be_v still_o to_o be_v understand_v next_o he_o cite_v tertullian_n adversùs_fw-la judaeos_fw-la 189._o edit_fw-la rig._n p._n 189._o and_o have_v search_v that_o book_n these_o or_o none_o be_v the_o word_n he_o mean_v viz._n those_o word_n of_o david_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o apostle_n their_o sound_n be_v go_v forth_o in_o all_o the_o earth_n and_o their_o word_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o in_o who_o have_v all_o nation_n believe_v but_o in_o christ_n who_o be_v now_o come_v the_o parthian_n mede_n elamites_n and_o those_o that_o inhabit_v mesopotamia_n armenia_n phrygia_n cappadocia_n pontus_n asia_n and_o pamphilia_n egypt_n africa_n and_o beyond_o cyrene_n the_o roman_n and_o jew_n now_o in_o jerusalem_n and_o other_o nation_n as_o now_o of_o the_o getuli_n and_o moor_n all_o spain_n divers_a country_n of_o the_o gaul_n and_o those_o of_o the_o britain_n which_o the_o roman_n can_v never_o conquer_v be_v subject_a to_o christ_n etc._n etc._n but_o i_o again_o ask_v what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n more_o than_o to_o any_o other_o particular_a church_n belong_v to_o any_o one_o of_o the_o many_o nation_n of_o which_o that_o of_o the_o roman_n be_v one_o and_o two_o whole_a quarter_n of_o the_o world_n here_o mention_v his_o three_o father_n be_v st._n cyprian_n 100l_n edit_fw-la oxon._n p._n 100l_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la but_o here_o be_v nothing_o he_o can_v fancy_v to_o be_v for_o his_o purpose_n except_o these_o word_n the_o church_n be_v one_o which_o by_o its_o fruitfulness_n be_v extend_v into_o a_o multitude_n as_o there_o be_v many_o ray_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o but_o one_o light_n etc._n etc._n so_o the_o church_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o be_v fill_v with_o light_n send_v forth_o her_o beam_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v but_o one_o light_n which_o be_v diffuse_v everywhere_o but_o though_o this_o be_v say_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v here_o the_o least_o intimation_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v this_o catholic_n church_n after_o st._n cyprian_n follow_v several_a of_o the_o late_a father_n their_o book_n be_v only_o direct_v to_o but_o the_o narrow_a room_n i_o be_o confine_v to_o will_v not_o permit_v i_o to_o examine_v they_o nor_o need_v we_o look_v any_o far_a to_o be_v satisfy_v how_o this_o great_a man_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n condescend_v to_o the_o most_o shameful_a impertinence_n in_o cite_v scripture_n and_o father_n for_o the_o do_v her_o service_n but_o we_o must_v not_o overlook_v st._n prosper_n verse_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr ingratis_fw-la viz._n sedes_fw-la roma_fw-la petri_n quae_fw-la pastoralis_fw-la honoris_fw-la facta_fw-la caput_fw-la mundo_fw-la quicquid_fw-la non_fw-la possidet_fw-la armis_fw-la relligione_fw-la tenet_fw-la i._n e._n rome_n the_o seat_n of_o peter_n be_v make_v the_o head_n of_o pastoral_n honour_n in_o the_o world_n whatsoever_o country_n she_o possess_v not_o by_o her_o arm_n she_o hold_v by_o her_o religion_n but_o consider_v how_o early_o this_o father_n live_v viz._n about_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o five_o century_n he_o can_v mean_v no_o more_o than_o this_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o most_o honourable_a of_o all_o other_o by_o mean_n of_o that_o city_n be_v the_o ancient_a seat_n of_o the_o emperor_n keep_v still_o possession_n of_o those_o place_n by_o the_o religion_n they_o receive_v from_o she_o over_o which_o she_o have_v lose_v her_o old_a dominion_n and_o what_o be_v this_o but_o another_o plain_a instance_n of_o most_o idle_a quote_v of_o ancient_a author_n not_o to_o reflect_v upon_o fetch_a argument_n from_o poetical_a flourish_v but_o not_o to_o stand_v to_o consider_v how_o ample_a the_o roman_a church_n be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o those_o father_n nothing_o be_v more_o evident_a than_o that_o that_o part_n of_o christendom_n she_o take_v up_o be_v but_o a_o small_a spot_n of_o ground_n compare_v with_o the_o space_n those_o church_n fill_v which_o though_o they_o hold_v communion_n with_o she_o be_v distinct_a church_n from_o she_o and_o own_v no_o subjection_n to_o her._n and_o it_o be_v about_o or_o above_o a_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o young_a of_o those_o father_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v invert_v by_o that_o execrable_a wretch_n phocas_n a_o bless_a title_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n with_o the_o primacy_n over_o all_o church_n and_o gregory_n the_o great_a who_o die_v in_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o six_o century_n not_o only_o sharp_o inveigh_v against_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o his_o successor_n cyriacus_n for_o assume_v to_o themselves_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n though_o there_o be_v no_o appearance_n of_o their_o design_v any_o thing_n more_o thereby_o than_o a_o addition_n of_o honour_n not_o of_o power_n to_o that_o patriarchate_o but_o also_o call_v those_o who_o shall_v affect_v such_o a_o haughty_a title_n 4._o greg._n epist_n 37._o &_o 70._o lib._n 11._o &_o ep._n 30._o l._n 4._o the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n and_o as_o these_o bishop_n take_v this_o title_n be_v a_o demonstration_n that_o they_o acknowledge_v not_o the_o least_o subjection_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n so_o pope_n gregory_n calling_n
often_o fallacious_a way_n of_o argue_v however_o popular_a and_o that_o need_v less_o trouble_n in_o examination_n from_o person_n to_o thing_n whereas_o these_o will_v continue_v the_o same_o but_o they_o be_v changeable_a 1._o but_o than_o it_o may_v be_v observe_v of_o the_o roman_a succession_n that_o the_o case_n seem_v so_o extreme_o change_v since_o the_o first_o time_n so_o great_a a_o alteration_n there_o be_v in_o the_o person_n and_o in_o the_o office_n to_o which_o the_o succession_n be_v now_o come_v that_o it_o can_v hardly_o be_v look_v on_o as_o the_o continuation_n of_o the_o same_o the_o episcopal_a power_n be_v all_o that_o we_o can_v find_v for_o some_o hundred_o of_o year_n lay_v claim_n to_o and_o our_o note_n be_v only_o concern_v in_o it_o though_o in_o some_o few_o single_a act_n it_o begin_v by_o degree_n to_o be_v stretch_v so_o as_o to_o put_v other_o bishop_n upon_o their_o guard_n and_o protestation_n as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o appeal_n by_o the_o african_n yet_o be_v all_o bishop_n own_v to_o have_v a_o equal_a share_n in_o that_o all_o to_o be_v of_o like_a power_n and_o authority_n all_o alike_a successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n whether_o at_o rome_n or_o in_o the_o mean_a city_n as_o in_o the_o know_a testimony_n in_o st._n cyprian_a and_o st._n jerom_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o papal_a power_n now_o challenge_v and_o exercise_v be_v so_o vast_o and_o wide_o different_a from_o episcopacy_n that_o scarce_o any_o propriety_n of_o speech_n can_v bring_v they_o under_o the_o same_o name_n but_o to_o come_v to_o matter_n of_o fact._n notwithstanding_o the_o high_a eulogium_n give_v by_o the_o ancient_n on_o particular_a occasion_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o bishop_n and_o the_o very_a bold_a effort_n and_o very_o lofty_a aspire_n of_o some_o of_o these_o yet_o he_o must_v have_v other_o eye_n or_o other_o spectacle_n than_o we_o can_v procure_v who_o can_v espy_v any_o thing_n like_o the_o supremacy_n and_o authority_n claim_v by_o the_o present_a papacy_n in_o the_o principle_n or_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n for_o more_o than_o five_o hundred_o year_n which_o as_o have_v be_v observe_v can_v not_o but_o have_v be_v as_o discernible_a in_o all_o the_o history_n of_o those_o time_n as_o the_o reference_n to_o the_o power_n of_o our_o king_n and_o manner_n of_o our_o government_n must_v be_v in_o our_o own_o history_n 2._o far_o indeed_o there_o seem_v no_o great_a reason_n for_o they_o to_o be_v much_o concern_v at_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n that_o be_v not_o very_o favourable_a to_o the_o very_a order_n we_o know_v what_o great_a opposition_n in_o their_o council_n of_o trent_n the_o divine_a right_n of_o episcopacy_n meet_v with_o from_o the_o chief_a favourite_n of_o that_o see_v when_o the_o determination_n be_v so_o strong_o press_v by_o other_o 24._o de_fw-fr pont._n rom._n l._n 1._o c._n 8_o 9_o l._n 4._o c._n 24._o and_o the_o author_n of_o these_o note_n be_v pleat_v to_o determine_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n not_o to_o be_v chief_o in_o the_o bishop_n but_o proper_o and_o entire_o monarchical_a in_o the_o pope_n only_o and_o that_o he_o derive_v his_o power_n immediate_o from_o christ_n but_o the_o bishop_n have_v they_o from_o he_o as_o to_o jurisdiction_n which_o be_v government_n 3._o moreover_o they_o have_v the_o less_o reason_n to_o except_v against_o any_o church_n for_o the_o want_n of_o this_o apostolical_a order_n when_o their_o very_a catechism_n that_o multiply_v order_n with_o much_o less_o distinction_n of_o office_n make_v this_o no_o distinct_a order_n but_o only_o a_o different_a degree_n of_o the_o same_o priesthood_n the_o supreme_a order_n in_o their_o church_n ascend_v only_o gradual_o from_o that_o of_o a_o common_a presbyter_n to_o that_o of_o bishop_n arch-bishop_n patriarch_n and_o the_o pope_n himself_o some_o of_o the_o intermediate_v we_o know_v admit_v no_o distinct_a ordination_n nay_o the_o pretend_a plenary_a power_n of_o the_o pope_n have_v sometime_o by_o particular_a delegation_n empower_v mitre_a abbot_n but_o mere_a presbyter_n to_o supply_v the_o place_n of_o two_o of_o the_o bishop_n if_o but_o one_o be_v present_a even_o in_o ordination_n itself_o and_o that_o of_o a_o bishop_n as_o bellarmine_n in_o this_o very_a note_n yield_v many_o other_o instance_n may_v be_v give_v of_o their_o endeavour_n to_o advance_v the_o first_o as_o it_o be_v on_o purpose_n to_o fence_v off_o the_o danger_n of_o a_o rival_n to_o what_o use_n else_o shall_v serve_v so_o many_o privilege_n and_o exemption_n long_o complain_v of_o their_o chief_a rise_n have_v be_v upon_o the_o depression_n of_o bishop_n and_o rob_v they_o of_o their_o ordinary_a power_n so_o quite_o opposite_a be_v the_o true_a case_n from_o the_o jealousy_n of_o some_o about_o this_o primitive_a order_n 4._o also_o they_o will_v have_v little_a cause_n to_o glory_n much_o in_o this_o pretend_a uninterrupted_a succession_n when_o they_o consider_v how_o many_o nullity_n according_a to_o their_o own_o principle_n may_v dissolve_v and_o separate_v the_o close_a connexion_n thereof_o for_o beside_o confuse_a tumultuary_a and_o simoniacal_a promotion_n from_o which_o their_o own_o writer_n will_v scarce_o free_v some_o of_o they_o that_o one_o principle_n of_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o effect_n of_o any_o sacrament_n have_v need_n make_v they_o fearful_a of_o rely_v too_o much_o upon_o it_o for_o in_o case_n this_o be_v once_o want_v in_o some_o of_o the_o principal_a source_n through_o so_o long_a a_o tract_n of_o time_n variety_n of_o circumstance_n and_o different_a temper_n of_o person_n which_o many_o will_v think_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o suppose_v however_o can_v never_o be_v certain_o prove_v otherwise_o by_o this_o rule_n they_o can_v be_v secure_a of_o any_o order_n yea_o scarce_o of_o any_o true_a christian_a among_o they_o so_o i_o proceed_v to_o the_o three_o inquiry_n how_o insufficient_a a_o proof_n this_o will_v afford_v they_o of_o any_o great_a advantage_n 3_o inquiry_n 3_o indeed_o bellarmin_n himself_o seem_v so_o just_a as_o in_o part_n to_o yield_v this_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o four_o objection_n about_o this_o note_n he_o say_v a_o argument_n may_v be_v bring_v that_o there_o the_o church_n be_v not_o where_o there_o be_v not_o this_o succession_n but_o it_o can_v thence_o necessary_o be_v gather_v that_o there_o the_o church_n be_v wheresoever_o this_o succession_n be_v so_o that_o it_o seem_v no_o positive_a proof_n with_o he_o wherefore_o he_o think_v fit_a to_o exclude_v the_o eastern_a church_n or_o break_v their_o succession_n upon_o pretence_n of_o heresy_n 1._o for_o first_o this_o succession_n be_v no_o sufficient_a evividence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o any_o church_n indeed_o be_v tradition_n so_o infallible_a a_o conveyance_n of_o truth_n as_o some_o man_n that_o talk_v of_o nothing_o below_o demonstration_n will_v vouch_v be_v it_o impossible_a for_o any_o new_a opinion_n to_o creep_v into_o the_o church_n be_v it_o necessary_a that_o man_n must_v believe_v to_o day_n as_o they_o do_v yesterday_o and_o so_o in_o short_a as_o it_o be_v at_o one_o leap_v up_o to_o the_o very_a apostle_n and_o that_o the_o passage_n of_o sixteen_o hundred_o year_n be_v able_a to_o make_v as_o little_a alteration_n in_o the_o memorial_n or_o evidence_n of_o what_o doctrine_n or_o rule_n of_o practice_n be_v first_o deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n as_o the_o last_o night_n sleep_n do_v of_o what_o pass_v the_o day_n before_o then_o every_o church_n of_o apostolical_a foundation_n and_o such_o be_v all_o then_o plant_v have_v be_v and_o will_v still_o continue_v as_o infallible_a as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n think_v herself_o and_o we_o shall_v not_o have_v have_v any_o dispute_n about_o their_o tenet_n nor_o any_o such_o exception_n against_o their_o succession_n what_o security_n they_o have_v from_o the_o defection_n which_o other_o be_v charge_v with_o or_o have_v be_v find_v liable_a to_o what_o evidence_n may_v be_v produce_v that_o any_o church_n or_o company_n of_o man_n in_o the_o church_n may_v not_o add_v in_o process_n of_o time_n some_o doctrine_n and_o usage_n very_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o common_a faith_n once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n and_o that_o the_o resolution_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v only_o with_o safety_n to_o be_v make_v into_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o infallibility_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n alone_o by_o itself_o or_o its_o dependent_n we_o be_v yet_o to_o seek_v and_o much_o wonder_n that_o the_o ancient_n in_o all_o their_o dispute_n with_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n shall_v take_v so_o great_a a_o compass_n to_o confute_v their_o adversary_n from_o scripture_n reason_n and_o other_o authority_n beside_o what_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n afford_v and_o not_o with_o our_o
modern_a controvertist_n make_v short_a work_n in_o appeal_n to_o this_o last_o only_o effectual_a way_n of_o decision_n have_v it_o then_o be_v receive_v and_o know_v for_o so_o fundamental_a a_o principle_n of_o christianity_n as_o be_v now_o pretend_a 2._o as_o this_o uninterrupted_a succession_n of_o bishop_n where_o yield_v be_v no_o sufficient_a proof_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o any_o church_n so_o neither_o be_v it_o a_o warrantable_a ground_n of_o the_o claim_n of_o superiority_n over_o another_o church_n which_o have_v not_o so_o clear_a evidence_n thereof_o and_o if_o these_o two_o fail_v those_o we_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o they_o will_v gain_v very_o little_a by_o this_o note_n for_o as_o the_o succession_n may_v yea_o ought_v to_o be_v suppose_v good_a when_o sufficient_a proof_n appear_v not_o to_o the_o contrary_a so_o where_o there_o real_o appear_v want_n of_o this_o succession_n and_o need_v to_o to_o fly_v to_o other_o church_n for_o the_o relief_n thereof_o yet_o this_o charitable_a assistance_n which_o all_o aught_o most_o free_o and_o willing_o to_o offer_v or_o lend_v to_o each_o other_o do_v not_o present_o give_v one_o the_o power_n over_o the_o other_o for_o ever_o after_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o seem_v not_o to_o derive_v their_o power_n over_o the_o church_n by_o they_o plant_v so_o much_o from_o the_o success_n of_o their_o labour_n as_o from_o their_o immediate_a divine_a commission_n intimate_v in_o the_o beginning_n of_o their_o epistle_n though_o the_o one_o be_v a_o great_a endearment_n and_o enforcement_n to_o the_o other_o and_o so_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v we_o may_v suppose_v sometime_o great_a church_n convert_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o less_o who_o be_v so_o happy_a as_o to_o receive_v the_o faith_n before_o they_o young_a church_n have_v many_o time_n leap_v over_o the_o head_n of_o much_o elder_n and_o the_o inferior_a have_v gain_v some_o considerable_a advancement_n in_o a_o civil_a account_n have_v soon_o arrive_v at_o a_o proportionable_a promotion_n in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a as_o particular_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n and_o somewhat_o like_a may_v be_v observe_v in_o the_o change_n of_o other_o city_n superior_a bishop_n be_v ordain_v by_o those_o over_o who_o they_o after_o have_v some_o authority_n for_o if_o not_o only_a priority_n of_o order_n but_o also_o superiority_n of_o jurisdiction_n be_v unalterable_o entail_v upon_o the_o elder_a i_o doubt_v the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n which_o be_v certain_o the_o mother-church_n must_v be_v also_o the_o mistress_n of_o all_o and_o if_o that_o line_n be_v extinct_a i_o believe_v there_o be_v many_o other_o branch_n it_o must_v descend_v to_o before_o it_o come_v to_o the_o roman_a some_o have_v dispute_v whether_o britain_n itself_o have_v not_o a_o church_n as_o soon_o and_o that_o they_o shall_v ground_v a_o claim_n from_o what_o they_o will_v not_o yield_v to_o other_o sufficient_a for_o the_o same_o purpose_n seem_v very_o unequal_a but_o sure_o the_o design_n and_o effect_n of_o this_o spiritual_a warfare_n be_v not_o like_o those_o usual_o of_o the_o carnal_a mere_o to_o enlarge_v the_o dominion_n of_o their_o leader_n and_o advance_v the_o power_n of_o their_o governor_n the_o church_n conquest_n consist_v in_o the_o multitude_n of_o soul_n gain_v to_o christ_n in_o the_o new_a plantation_n or_o far_a growth_n and_o emprovement_n of_o all_o christian_a grace_n and_o virtue_n in_o man_n wind_n in_o fasten_v some_o good_a and_o benefit_n on_o they_o and_o not_o in_o gain_v new_a outward_a dependence_n to_o ourselves_o any_o far_a than_o the_o needful_a preservation_n of_o peace_n and_o order_n in_o every_o distinct_a dominion_n what_o be_v more_o smell_v too_o strong_a of_o worldly_a policy_n temporal_a gain_n or_o secular_a ambition_n to_o have_v any_o true_a place_n here_o when_o man_n be_v more_o industrious_a to_o promote_v and_o encourage_v every_o where_o sincere_a piety_n and_o probity_n and_o less_o concern_v in_o the_o claim_v of_o unlimited_a sovereignty_n and_o power_n then_o may_v we_o think_v true_a religion_n and_o not_o other_o interest_n to_o be_v the_o first_o mover_n with_o they_o but_o to_o consider_v a_o little_a the_o cardinal_n testimony_n here_o the_o second_o out_o of_o st._n augustin_n psalmo_fw-la contra_fw-la partem_fw-la donati_n be_v the_o full_a and_o alone_a pertinent_a to_o their_o purpose_n i_o single_v out_o numerate_v inquit_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la vel_fw-la ab_fw-la ipsa_fw-la sede_n petri_n &_o in_o ordine_fw-la illa_fw-la patrum_fw-la quis_fw-la cvi_fw-la successerit_fw-la videte_fw-la ipsa_fw-la est_fw-la petriae_fw-la quam_fw-la non_fw-la vincunt_fw-la superbae_fw-la inferorum_fw-la portae_n as_o to_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o it_o where_o the_o stress_n lie_v we_o have_v this_o argument_n that_o it_o must_v be_v interpret_v only_o as_o a_o occasional_a allusion_n that_o in_o many_o place_n where_o he_o purposely_o expound_v that_o passage_n of_o the_o gospel_n he_o make_v christ_n himself_o confess_v by_o st._n peter_n to_o be_v the_o rock_n on_o which_o he_o build_v his_o church_n as_o retract_v l._n 1.21_o tom._n 1._o p._n 30._o and_o in_o cap._n 21._o sti._n johan_n tom._n 9_o p._n 572._o super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la quam_fw-la confessus_fw-la se_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o indeed_o assert_v no_o more_o but_o matter_n of_o fact_n in_o a_o single_a case_n that_o the_o seat_n of_o st._n peter_n to_o which_o the_o donatist_n when_o condemn_v by_o the_o african_a bishop_n upon_o their_o appeal_n to_o the_o emperor_n be_v refer_v be_v as_o a_o rock_n which_o the_o proud_a gate_n of_o hell_n so_o he_o resemble_v their_o presumption_n do_v not_o prevail_v against_o that_o be_v the_o cause_n be_v give_v against_o they_o by_o the_o roman_a bishop_n and_o other_o join_v with_o he_o where_o though_o some_o allusion_n may_v be_v make_v to_o the_o place_n in_o the_o gospel_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o fair_a to_o strain_v a_o argument_n thence_o against_o the_o plain_a and_o express_o design_v exposition_n of_o if_o especial_o among_o such_o short_a stricture_n of_o which_o that_o tract_n be_v make_v up_o and_o for_o the_o other_o testimony_n in_o irenaeus_n tertullian_n and_o epiphanius_n we_o acknowledge_v their_o argument_n good_a against_o upstart_n teacher_n of_o new_a doctrine_n but_o they_o express_o join_v succession_n of_o doctrine_n with_o that_o of_o person_n otherwise_o it_o have_v be_v of_o no_o validity_n unless_o by_o refer_v their_o adversary_n who_o be_v not_o much_o move_v by_o authority_n to_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o conveyance_n of_o the_o opposite_a opinion_n to_o they_o from_o the_o first_o original_n the_o other_o two_o place_n in_o st._n aug._n and_o that_o of_o optatus_n against_o the_o donatist_n imply_v no_o more_o to_o those_o presumptuous_a incloser_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n within_o their_o own_o narrow_a bound_n and_o beginner_n of_o it_o from_o themselves_o than_o a_o challenge_n for_o they_o to_o show_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o apostolical_a original_a thereof_o or_o after-conveyance_n like_o other_o church_n and_o particular_o the_o roman_a wherein_n st._n augustin_n epist_n 165_o after_o a_o catalogue_n of_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o thus_o close_v in_o hoc_fw-la ordine_fw-la successionis_fw-la nullus_fw-la donatista_n episcopus_fw-la invenitur_fw-la and_o in_o all_o his_o dispute_n with_o they_o lay_v the_o charge_n of_o the_o gild_n of_o their_o schism_n upon_o the_o separation_n from_o all_o the_o church_n disperse_v over_o the_o world_n according_a to_o prophetical_a and_o evangelical_n declaration_n no_o person_n or_o place_n to_o prejudicate_v to_o all_o other_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o forementioned_a ut_fw-la certa_fw-la sit_fw-la spes_fw-la fidelibus_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la in_o homine_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o domino_fw-la collocata_fw-la all_o which_o and_o more_o to_o any_o that_o consult_v the_o reference_n throughout_o rather_o confirm_v our_o claim_n we_o have_v as_o good_a evidence_n and_o conveyance_n as_o our_o adversary_n can_v challenge_v we_o pretend_v not_o to_o any_o new_a doctrine_n but_o for_o the_o main_a we_o be_v what_o themselves_o dare_v not_o but_o own_o what_o we_o reject_v among_o they_o be_v not_o only_o as_o addition_n which_o none_o must_v make_v to_o the_o first_o principle_n of_o religion_n but_o over_o and_o above_o very_o dangerous_a and_o destructive_a to_o the_o common_a faith_n of_o both_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o such_o doctrine_n or_o continuance_n of_o it_o we_o need_v no_o new_a miracle_n or_o new_a authority_n from_o heaven_n but_o a_o orderly_a conveyance_n of_o the_o old_a and_o that_o we_o still_o thanks_o be_v to_o god_n retain_v and_o true_o bellarmin_n inference_n from_o the_o mention_a citation_n will_v carry_v in_o it_o little_a or_o no_o force_n but_o seem_v rather_o to_o incline_v the_o contrary_a way_n if_o they_o say_v he_o make_v so_o much_o of_o the_o continue_a succession_n of_o 12_o 20_o or_o 40_o bishop_n how_o much_o may_v
that_o she_o impose_v must_v be_v set_v by_o till_o it_o appear_v that_o she_o require_v the_o same_o doctrine_n and_o no_o other_o than_o what_o be_v teach_v and_o believe_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o according_a to_o this_o note_v it_o do_v not_o appear_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n till_o it_o first_o appear_v that_o it_o agree_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a and_o till_o it_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v a_o true_a church_n it_o can_v sure_o appear_v to_o be_v a_o infallible_a one_o for_o it_o can_v he_o pretend_v that_o infallibility_n belong_v to_o any_o but_o the_o true_a church_n and_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v first_o know_v that_o the_o present_a church_n agree_v with_o the_o primitive_a before_o it_o can_v be_v know_v that_o she_o be_v a_o infallible_a guide_n or_o teacher_n so_o that_o we_o manifest_o gain_v this_o first_o by_o this_o note_n of_o the_o church_n that_o all_o those_o big_a and_o bluster_a claim_n to_o infallibility_n must_v be_v postpone_v and_o lay_v aside_o till_o that_o of_o agree_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v make_v out_o and_o when_o that_o be_v do_v we_o shall_v not_o have_v quite_o so_o much_o reason_n to_o question_v her_o infallibility_n we_o desire_v nothing_o more_o than_o to_o have_v the_o matter_n bring_v to_o this_o issue_n whether_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o reform_a or_o the_o romish_a church_n do_v agree_v best_a with_o the_o primitive_a since_o for_o reason_n well_o know_v to_o themselves_o and_o very_o much_o suspect_v by_o other_o they_o be_v so_o willing_a to_o go_v off_o from_o scripture_n and_o to_o decline_v the_o judgement_n of_o that_o as_o incompetent_a and_o insufficient_a in_o most_o of_o the_o controversy_n between_o we_o we_o be_v very_o ready_a to_o leave_v they_o to_o be_v decide_v by_o any_o other_o indifferent_a arbitrator_n for_o we_o think_v it_o be_v a_o little_a odd_a and_o unreasonable_a they_o shall_v make_v themselves_o the_o only_a judge_n of_o what_o be_v in_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o therefore_o we_o be_v very_o ready_a to_o stand_v to_o the_o award_n and_o vmpirage_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o we_o be_v not_o in_o the_o least_o afraid_a to_o venture_v our_o whole_a cause_n to_o the_o sentence_n and_o decision_n of_o that_o for_o though_o the_o scripture_n be_v our_o only_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v by_o we_o because_o we_o know_v of_o no_o other_o revelation_n but_o that_o and_o nothing_o but_o revelation_n make_v any_o doctrine_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v yet_o we_o be_v very_o willing_a to_o take_v the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o scripture_n both_o from_o itself_o and_o from_o the_o primitive_a church_n too_o so_o according_a to_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n to_o have_v the_o line_n of_o scriptural_a interpretation_n be_v direct_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o ecclesiastical_a and_o catholic_n judgement_n 2._o judgement_n ut_fw-la propheticae_fw-la &_o apostolicae_fw-la interpretationis_fw-la linea_fw-la secundum_fw-la ecclesiastici_fw-la &_o catholici_fw-la sensus_fw-la normam_fw-la dirigatur_fw-la vincent_n lyrinens_fw-la contra_fw-la haeres_fw-la c._n 2._o that_o be_v to_o have_v the_o primitive_a church_n direct_v we_o in_o interpret_n scripture_n where_o it_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o it_o or_o there_o be_v any_o controversy_n about_o its_o meaning_n let_v the_o scripture_n therefore_o as_o sense_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o not_o by_o the_o private_a judgement_n of_o any_o particular_a man_n be_v allow_v and_o agree_v by_o we_o to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o let_v that_o be_v account_v the_o true_a church_n who_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n be_v most_o conformable_a and_o agreeable_a with_o the_o primitive_a we_o desire_v nothing_o more_o than_o to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a church_n by_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o we_o think_v this_o be_v the_o true_a way_n to_o find_v it_o out_o for_o christian_a faith_n be_v prior_n and_o antecedent_n to_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o that_o must_v be_v first_o know_v and_o suppose_v before_o we_o can_v know_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o a_o church_n for_o it_o be_v the_o faith_n make_v the_o church_n and_o not_o the_o church_n the_o faith_n and_o therefore_o the_o true_a church_n be_v to_o be_v know_v by_o the_o true_a doctrine_n and_o not_o the_o true_a doctrine_n by_o the_o church_n as_o be_v some_o folk_n way_n if_o a_o church_n then_o have_v never_o so_o many_o other_o glorious_a mark_n yet_o if_o it_o have_v not_o the_o true_a faith_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n before_o lay_v down_o it_o can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o if_o it_o have_v never_o so_o true_a a_o succession_n of_o pastor_n derive_v their_o power_n in_o a_o uninterrupted_a line_n from_o the_o apostle_n yet_o if_o it_o have_v not_o a_o true_a succession_n of_o doctrine_n too_o from_o they_o it_o be_v not_o a_o true_a church_n so_o far_o indeed_o as_o it_o hold_v and_o profess_v the_o common_a christian_a faith_n so_o far_o for_o that_o very_a reason_n it_o be_v a_o true_a church_n and_o so_o far_o we_o allow_v the_o roman_a to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n and_o so_o far_o they_o can_v deny_v we_o to_o be_v one_o neither_o as_o the_o same_o faith_n &_o fundamental_o of_o christianity_n be_v receive_v and_o believe_v by_o both_o of_o we_o for_o this_o faith_n be_v the_o same_o to_o both_o of_o we_o make_v we_o both_o so_o far_o to_o be_v true_a church_n upon_o the_o same_o ground_n but_o so_o far_o as_o we_o differ_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n whether_o we_o or_o they_o be_v the_o true_a church_n be_v the_o question_n between_o we_o and_o we_o be_v willing_a to_o have_v this_o determine_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n if_o the_o faith_n then_o and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n wherein_o it_o differ_v from_o we_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n then_o that_o be_v the_o true_a church_n if_o it_o be_v contrary_a and_o unagreeable_a to_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a than_o it_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n but_o a_o false_a and_o erroneous_a one_o and_o here_o we_o ought_v to_o make_v a_o particular_a enquiry_n and_o examination_n of_o all_o those_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o controversy_n between_o we_o and_o bring_v each_o of_o they_o to_o the_o test_n and_o trial_n and_o see_v which_o church_n do_v most_o agree_v in_o all_o those_o dispute_v doctrine_n with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o here_o we_o must_v be_v allow_v to_o examine_v particular_a doctrine_n that_o be_v in_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o every_o private_a christian_a who_o be_v seek_v for_o the_o true_a church_n must_v if_o he_o will_v find_v it_o by_o this_o mark_n of_o bellarmine_n be_v allow_v to_o inquire_v into_o and_o examine_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o present_a church_n and_o see_v whether_o they_o be_v agreeable_a to_o those_o of_o the_o primitive_a or_o no_o and_o this_o he_o must_v do_v by_o his_o private_a judgement_n and_o by_o the_o best_a mean_n and_o help_v he_o can_v use_v to_o this_o purpose_n for_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o suppose_v to_o have_v find_v out_o the_o true_a church_n but_o to_o be_v find_v it_o out_o by_o this_o mark_v give_v of_o it_o and_o till_o he_o have_v find_v it_o out_o by_o this_o mark_n and_o direction_n he_o can_v be_v under_o its_o guidance_n and_o conduct_n so_o that_o he_o must_v make_v use_n of_o his_o own_o reason_n and_o judgement_n at_o least_o till_o he_o have_v thus_o find_v it_o that_o be_v he_o must_v have_v the_o liberty_n to_o search_v and_o inquire_v into_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o to_o judge_v for_o himself_o as_o well_o as_o he_o can_v by_o his_o own_o best_a discretion_n and_o the_o best_a help_n he_o can_v use_v which_o church_n do_v best_a agree_v in_o its_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n with_o the_o primitive_a and_o according_a as_o he_o shall_v upon_o his_o own_o enquiry_n and_o examination_n find_v so_o he_o must_v choose_v that_o church_n which_o he_o think_v be_v the_o true_a but_o he_o must_v not_o give_v himself_o up_o to_o the_o absolute_a guidance_n and_o direction_n of_o any_o church_n at_o least_o till_o he_o have_v by_o this_o way_n find_v out_o the_o true_a which_o be_v another_o manifest_a advantage_n that_o we_o have_v by_o this_o note_n against_o our_o adversary_n who_o be_v rather_o for_o bear_v man_n down_o with_o the_o bold_a pretence_n of_o infallibility_n and_o the_o terrible_a fright_n of_o damnation_n out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n rather_o than_o suffer_v they_o according_a to_o this_o true_a method_n to_o find_v it_o out_o and_o as_o he_o must_v thus_o use_v his_o own_o judgement_n in_o a_o impartial_a search_n
venture_v their_o cause_n to_o any_o other_o sentence_n but_o that_o of_o scripture_n which_o have_v so_o plain_o decide_v for_o they_o and_o be_v indeed_o the_o most_o proper_a to_o be_v appeal_v to_o yet_o the_o great_a number_n and_o the_o most_o learned_a of_o the_o protestant_a writer_n have_v never_o decline_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o next_o to_o the_o inspire_a write_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v always_o esteem_v and_o be_v willing_a to_o be_v determine_v by_o it_o and_o we_o be_v well_o assure_v that_o the_o ancient_a church_n even_o the_o roman_n itself_o as_o well_o as_o the_o whole_a christian_a beside_o be_v in_o all_o material_a point_n on_o the_o protestant_a side_n and_o a_o perfect_a stranger_n if_o not_o a_o utter_a enemy_n to_o those_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o corruption_n of_o doctrine_n which_o have_v be_v since_o bring_v into_o the_o western_a church_n and_o which_o we_o have_v for_o that_o reason_n protest_v against_o because_o they_o be_v unknown_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n it_o will_v too_o much_o exceed_v the_o set_v limit_n of_o this_o paper_n to_o make_v this_o out_o so_o full_o as_o may_v easy_o be_v do_v by_o go_v through_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o difference_n between_o we_o bellarmine_n in_o his_o discourse_n upon_o this_o note_n go_v whole_o off_o from_o it_o and_o choose_v rather_o to_o pursue_v luther_n and_o calvin_n and_o some_o other_o worthy_a reformer_n through_o all_o the_o path_n of_o calumny_n and_o slander_n but_o i_o shall_v not_o follow_v he_o to_o take_v he_o off_o from_o those_o false_a and_o injurious_a representation_n he_o have_v make_v of_o their_o doctrine_n if_o any_o body_n have_v the_o curiosity_n to_o see_v the_o art_n of_o misrepresent_v in_o its_o great_a perfection_n let_v he_o but_o read_v that_o chapter_n but_o if_o he_o will_v see_v it_o as_o perfect_o shame_v and_o expose_v let_v he_o read_v bishop_n morton_n long_a and_o learned_a answer_n to_o it_o 278._o it_o apologia_fw-la catholica_fw-la p._n 61._o to_o p._n 278._o we_o be_v examine_v the_o doctrine_n and_o find_v out_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o of_o particular_a man_n and_o have_v calvin_n or_o other_o teach_v any_o such_o doctrine_n as_o be_v very_o false_o there_o lay_v to_o their_o charge_n i_o know_v none_o have_v be_v concern_v in_o they_o but_o themselves_o and_o no_o church_n can_v have_v be_v prejudice_v by_o they_o any_o far_a than_o it_o have_v receive_v they_o i_o shall_v therefore_o keep_v more_o close_o to_o bellarmine_n note_n though_o not_o to_o his_o method_n upon_o it_o and_o i_o assure_v a_o late_a adviser_n bel●●mine_fw-la adviser_n advice_n to_o the_o confuter_n of_o bel●●mine_fw-la it_o be_v not_o the_o design_n of_o confute_v he_o but_o set_v man_n right_a in_o the_o way_n to_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o the_o true_a church_n when_o other_o be_v so_o busy_a to_o draw_v they_o off_o by_o false_a mark_n and_o pretence_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o undertake_n i_o confess_v it_o will_v be_v too_o prolix_a as_o bellarmine_n say_v to_o produce_v all_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_n thereby_o to_o show_v what_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n in_o every_o particular_a point_n controvert_v between_o we_o i_o shall_v therefore_o offer_v only_o some_o plain_a and_o brief_a remark_n by_o which_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n may_v be_v undeniable_o know_v in_o most_o of_o the_o controversy_n and_o by_o which_o it_o will_v appear_v what_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n then_o and_o how_o contrary_a that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v now_o to_o it_o and_o here_o i_o shall_v first_o begin_v with_o the_o most_o primitive_a that_o be_v with_o the_o apostolic_a church_n which_o true_o and_o only_o deserve_v the_o title_n of_o be_v mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o christian_a church_n that_o ever_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o world_n it_o be_v as_o vain_a as_o arrogant_a for_o any_o late_a and_o particular_a church_n to_o assume_v that_o to_o itself_o which_o be_v but_o a_o sister-church_n at_o most_o and_o young_a than_o some_o of_o the_o rest_n and_o though_o more_o fine_a and_o proud_a yet_o not_o half_a so_o honest_a and_o uncorrupt_a this_o apostolic_a church_n which_o be_v found_v and_o govern_v by_o the_o apostle_n over_o all_o the_o world_n be_v the_o true_a standard_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o as_o in_o reveal_v religion_n that_o which_o be_v first_o be_v true_a according_a to_o tertullian_n 4._o tertullian_n id_fw-la verum_fw-la quod_fw-la prius_fw-la id_fw-la prius_fw-la quod_fw-la ab_fw-la initio_fw-la ab_fw-la initio_fw-la quod_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n tertul._n de_fw-fr prescript_n l._n 4._o axiom_n because_o it_o come_v near_a to_o the_o first_o pure_a fountain_n of_o revelation_n so_o as_o he_o add_v that_o be_v first_o which_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o from_o the_o apostle_n we_o shall_v first_o then_o examine_v what_o be_v the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n the_o great_a an_o almost_o only_a account_n of_o which_o we_o have_v in_o their_o own_o canonical_a write_n which_o be_v receive_v and_o allow_v as_o such_o by_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n and_o in_o these_o our_o adversary_n find_v so_o little_a of_o their_o own_o late_a and_o new_a doctrine_n that_o they_o can_v but_o own_o that_o these_o be_v insufficient_a to_o authorise_v and_o establish_v most_o of_o they_o without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a church_n and_o without_o the_o help_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n when_o we_o produce_v scripture_n against_o our_o adversary_n we_o then_o produce_v the_o only_a authentic_a record_n of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n and_o the_o only_a certain_a account_n we_o have_v of_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o most_o primitive_a church_n let_v they_o object_v therefore_o never_o so_o much_o against_o scripture_n as_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n yet_o whilst_o it_o contain_v the_o only_a sure_a testimony_n of_o what_o be_v teach_v and_o believe_v by_o the_o first_o christian_a church_n so_o far_o as_o any_o of_o these_o doctrine_n be_v not_o in_o scripture_n so_o far_o they_o can_v appear_v to_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n and_o whilst_o we_o hold_v all_o that_o faith_n and_o all_o those_o doctrine_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n we_o hold_v all_o that_o can_v be_v know_v to_o be_v so_o in_o the_o most_o pure_a and_o most_o primitive_a church_n and_o whatsoever_o they_o have_v add_v to_o scripture_n which_o they_o will_v needs_o have_v to_o be_v but_o a_o imperfect_a rule_n of_o faith_n they_o have_v add_v so_o far_o as_o can_v be_v know_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n for_o if_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o only_a rule_n of_o that_o yet_o it_o be_v the_o only_a historical_a account_n we_o have_v of_o it_o but_o i_o shall_v not_o at_o present_a deal_n with_o they_o out_o of_o scripture_n though_o as_o it_o be_v only_o a_o record_n and_o evidence_n of_o the_o apostolical_a faith_n they_o will_v count_v this_o but_o a_o trick_n i_o know_v to_o draw_v they_o into_o a_o scripture_n dispute_v which_o they_o be_v mighty_a averse_a to_o and_o which_o they_o design_v to_o avoid_v by_o a_o appeal_n from_o that_o to_o the_o primitive_a church_n we_o will_v go_v on_o therefore_o with_o our_o note_n as_o they_o i_o suppose_v mean_v and_o understand_v it_o and_o that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v too_o troublesome_a to_o they_o with_o scripture_n and_o the_o apostolic_a write_n we_o will_v go_v several_a age_n low_a even_o down_o to_o those_o time_n wherein_o the_o church_n be_v in_o its_o glorious_a state_n under_o the_o first_o christian_n emperor_n and_o whether_o their_o doctrine_n or_o we_o be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o those_o of_o this_o primitive_a church_n let_v we_o now_o come_v brief_o to_o inquire_v in_o some_o particular_a instance_n and_o by_o some_o few_o short_a remark_n and_o observation_n and_o first_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o their_o pretend_a supremacy_n then_o allow_v of_o when_o in_o the_o first_o general_a council_n at_o nice_a 6._o nice_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d conc._n nicen._n can._n 6._o there_o be_v a_o limit_a power_n assign_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o there_o be_v to_o the_o other_o metropolitan_o of_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n who_o be_v to_o keep_v their_o bound_n set_v they_o by_o ancient_a custom_n which_o be_v utter_o inconsistent_a with_o a_o universal_a supremacy_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n by_o a_o divine_a right_n as_o be_v since_o pretend_a and_o claim_v contrary_a to_o all_o antiquity_n for_o the_o next_o general_n council_n appoint_v the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n to_o have_v prerogative_n of_o honour_n
diversa_fw-la sentire_fw-la inveniuntur_fw-la quia_fw-la super_fw-la his_fw-la varia_fw-la ac_fw-la penè_fw-la adversa_fw-la tradidisse_fw-la videntur_fw-la doctores_fw-la lomb._n sent._n l._n 4._o do_v 17._o that_o learned_a man_n be_v find_v to_o have_v different_a sentiment_n about_o it_o and_o that_o the_o doctor_n deliver_v themselves_o various_o and_o different_o upon_o it_o and_o therefore_o it_o can_v not_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n then_o but_o of_o this_o see_v a_o learned_a treatise_n write_v on_o purpose_n be_v the_o roman_a purgatory_n a_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n of_o which_o alphonsus_n à_fw-la castro_n confess_v there_o be_v almost_o no_o mention_n of_o it_o in_o any_o of_o the_o ancient_a writer_n 115._o writer_n de_fw-fr purgatorio_fw-la fere_n nulla_fw-la in_o antiquis_fw-la scriptoribus_fw-la mentio_fw-la alfon_n de_fw-fr castro_n contra_fw-la haeres_fw-la l._n 8._o p._n 115._o bp_o fisher_n 18._o fisher_n roffens_n contra_fw-la luther_n art._n 18._o be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n with_o he_o and_o that_o old_a christian_a custom_n of_o celebrate_v the_o day_n of_o their_o friend_n death_n as_o a_o festival_n and_o day_n of_o rejoice_v because_o they_o be_v then_o release_v from_o all_o pain_n and_o sorrow_n 3._o sorrow_n nos_fw-la non_fw-la nativitatis_fw-la diem_fw-la celebramus_fw-la cum_fw-la sit_fw-la dolorum_fw-la atque_fw-la tentationum_fw-la introitus_fw-la sed_fw-la mortis_fw-la diem_fw-la celebramus_fw-la utpote_fw-la omnium_fw-la dolorum_fw-la depositionem_fw-la comment_fw-fr in_o job_n apud_fw-la origen_n l._n 3._o be_v to_o i_o a_o plain_a argument_n they_o do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o believe_v any_o such_o thing_n what_o shall_v we_o think_v then_o of_o indulgence_n as_o they_o relate_v to_o purgatory_n have_v the_o ancient_a church_n any_o such_o notion_n of_o they_o but_o mere_o as_o abatement_n of_o canonical_a penance_n and_o purgatory_n i_o suppose_v be_v no_o part_n of_o that_o do_v not_o alfonsus_n own_o that_o they_o be_v receive_v very_o late_o into_o the_o church_n 115._o church_n earum_fw-la usus_fw-la in_o ecclesiâ_fw-la videtur_fw-la sero_fw-la receptus_fw-la alfonsus_n de_fw-fr castro_n l._n 8._o p._n 115._o and_o cajetan_n say_v there_o be_v no_o authority_n of_o scripture_n or_o of_o any_o father_n greek_n or_o latin_a that_o bring_v they_o to_o our_o knowledge_n c._n knowledge_n cajet_fw-fr opusc_n 15._o c._n prayer_n and_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a i_o confess_v be_v a_o very_a ancient_a practice_n but_o i_o know_v no_o doctrine_n the_o primitive_a church_n have_v concern_v they_o but_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n which_o be_v both_o in_o the_o church_n militant_a and_o triumphant_a and_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o border_v upon_o the_o roman_a doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n that_o they_o utter_o destroy_v it_o for_o they_o be_v offer_v for_o those_o who_o be_v own_v to_o be_v in_o happiness_n and_o can_v never_o be_v suppose_v to_o go_v to_o purgatory_n to_o wit_n for_o saint_n and_o martyr_n and_o apostle_n and_o even_o for_o the_o virgin_n mary_n herself_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o ancient_a liturgy_n chrysost_o liturgy_n lyturg._n aegyptiac_n lyturg._n chrysost_o as_o to_o prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n this_o can_v i_o hope_v be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o if_o the_o language_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v as_o unalterable_a as_o she_o pretend_v her_o faith_n be_v her_o prayer_n have_v be_v in_o a_o know_a tongue_n now_o but_o i_o doubt_v they_o be_v both_o equal_o changeable_a as_o to_o the_o worship_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n and_o the_o offer_v up_o prayer_n to_o they_o and_o to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n i_o shall_v offer_v but_o one_o observation_n out_o of_o antiquity_n which_o do_v for_o ever_o destroy_v all_o manner_n of_o worship_n of_o what_o degree_n soever_o to_o any_o but_o the_o true_a god_n and_o that_o be_v the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n which_o be_v lay_v by_o all_o the_o orthodox_n father_n against_o the_o arian_n for_o worship_v and_o pray_v to_o christ_n when_o they_o believe_v he_o not_o to_o be_v the_o true_a god_n but_o only_o a_o creature_n though_o of_o the_o most_o exalt_a nature_n this_o do_v so_o full_o show_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n against_o all_o worship_n be_v it_o of_o what_o kind_n it_o will_v to_o any_o creature_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o high_a and_o most_o sovereign_a worship_n which_o the_o arrian_n be_v suppose_v or_o charge_v to_o give_v to_o christ_n that_o it_o be_v the_o plain_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o manner_n of_o worship_n then_o to_o saint_n or_o angel_n or_o to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n as_o there_o be_v now_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o he_o that_o will_v see_v the_o clear_a account_n of_o antiquity_n in_o this_o matter_n let_v he_o consult_v a_o most_o excellent_a discourse_n concern_v the_o worship_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o the_o saint_n with_o a_o account_n of_o the_o beginning_n and_o rise_v of_o it_o among_o christian_n against_o mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr meaux_n as_o to_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n it_o be_v too_o well_o know_v at_o what_o time_n and_o with_o what_o opposition_n that_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o western_a church_n and_o how_o great_a a_o part_n of_o it_o do_v then_o declare_v against_o they_o so_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o shall_v have_v be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o be_v with_o so_o great_a a_o struggle_v and_o violence_n bring_v into_o the_o roman_a at_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o seven_o century_n as_o to_o the_o first_o age_n it_o be_v plain_a from_o the_o instance_n of_o epiphanius_n and_o the_o council_n of_o eliberis_n that_o they_o will_v not_o suffer_v image_n and_o picture_n in_o their_o church_n and_o at_o first_o hardly_o think_v the_o very_a make_n of_o they_o to_o be_v lawful_a as_o appear_v from_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n but_o i_o must_v not_o insist_v on_o particular_n i_o offer_v only_o some_o few_o undeniable_a breviate_n of_o antiquity_n by_o which_o it_o can_v but_o evident_o appear_v to_o any_o ingenuous_a man_n that_o these_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o distinguish_v it_o from_o the_o reform_a be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o be_v plain_o and_o notorious_o contrary_a to_o the_o best_a antiquity_n though_o they_o be_v very_o apt_a to_o brag_v of_o that_o upon_o all_o occasion_n yet_o how_o little_a they_o esteem_v it_o and_o how_o conscious_a they_o be_v to_o themselves_o that_o it_o be_v not_o for_o their_o purpose_n and_o that_o it_o be_v true_o against_o they_o i_o shall_v by_o some_o general_a remark_n unquestionable_o demonstrate_v and_o make_v they_o if_o they_o have_v any_o shame_n confess_v it_o themselves_o and_o first_o what_o mean_v their_o expurgatory_n indices_fw-la whereby_o they_o have_v correct_v so_o many_o father_n and_o blot_v out_o and_o expunge_v so_o many_o sentence_n out_o of_o the_o write_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o by_o new_a addition_n make_v they_o speak_v contrary_a to_o themselves_o in_o so_o many_o place_n of_o their_o work_n if_o they_o be_v not_o sensible_a that_o those_o ancient_a author_n who_o bring_v down_o to_o we_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v in_o many_o thing_n witness_n against_o they_o and_o bear_v evident_a testimony_n against_o their_o new_a opinion_n this_o be_v so_o plain_a a_o confession_n that_o antiquity_n be_v against_o they_o and_o render_v they_o so_o much_o self-condemned_n that_o they_o intend_v to_o have_v keep_v these_o indices_fw-la very_o private_a and_o it_o be_v only_o by_o chance_n that_o we_o come_v to_o the_o first_o knowledge_n of_o they_o our_o learned_a james_n have_v acquaint_v the_o world_n with_o the_o mystery_n of_o they_o as_o he_o call_v it_o but_o it_o be_v so_o plain_a a_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n that_o it_o need_v nothing_o to_o discover_v the_o fraud_n and_o villainy_n of_o it_o to_o raze_v ancient_a record_n be_v a_o crime_n of_o the_o high_a nature_n and_o they_o who_o be_v guilty_a of_o it_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v in_o the_o great_a degree_n by_o thus_o purge_v and_o correct_v the_o father_n by_o a_o inquisition_n the_o most_o cruel_a of_o any_o other_o and_o that_o appoint_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n need_v no_o other_o proof_n to_o convict_v they_o that_o that_o cause_v which_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o such_o art_n be_v not_o to_o be_v defend_v without_o they_o and_o this_o be_v such_o a_o note_n of_o a_o church_n that_o it_o brand_n and_o stigmatize_n it_o with_o another_o mark_n than_o that_o of_o antiquity_n 2._o beside_o the_o correct_a or_o rather_o corrupt_v so_o many_o father_n which_o be_v genuine_a monument_n of_o antiquity_n the_o counterfeit_n so_o many_o false_a one_o and_o obtrude_a so_o many_o spurious_a author_n upon_o the_o world_n be_v a_o
christ_n and_o that_o we_o may_v grow_v up_o into_o he_o in_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v the_o head_n even_o christ_n now_o here_o we_o do_v not_o only_o find_v our_o saviour_n represent_v as_o the_o head_n of_o his_o church_n and_o we_o as_o the_o member_n of_o his_o body_n but_o that_o among_o the_o several_a subordinate_a member_n of_o which_o his_o body_n consist_v there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o that_o most_o necessary_a member_n of_o all_o if_o i_o may_v call_v it_o a_o member_n the_o vicarious_a head_n of_o the_o church_n for_o it_o be_v not_o say_v that_o he_o give_v first_o peter_n to_o be_v head_n of_o his_o church_n and_o then_o apostle_n etc._n etc._n but_o he_o give_v first_o some_o apostle_n and_o those_o not_o as_o head_n of_o his_o church_n neither_o but_o as_o principal_a member_n of_o it_o and_o in_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o same_o chapter_n where_o he_o describe_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n he_o say_v there_o be_v one_o body_n and_o one_o spirit_n one_o hope_n of_o our_o call_v one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o god_n and_o father_n of_o all_o now_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v whether_o the_o cardinal_n will_v have_v omit_v here_o one_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o church_n in_o which_o all_o aught_o to_o be_v unite_v and_o then_o let_v any_o man_n tell_v i_o why_o st._n paul_n do_v he_o have_v the_o like_a occasion_n in_o another_o place_n where_o have_v say_v much_o concern_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n you_o be_v say_v he_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o member_n in_o particular_a and_o god_n have_v set_v some_o in_o the_o church_n first_o apostle_n second_o prophet_n 28._o 1_o cor._n twelve_o 27_o 28._o three_o teacher_n etc._n etc._n now_o i_o say_v if_o this_o visible_a head_n of_o unity_n have_v be_v elsewhere_o mention_v never_o so_o often_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v be_v omit_v in_o any_o of_o these_o three_o place_n much_o less_o if_o he_o be_v mention_v no_o where_o else_o but_o no_o notice_n be_v take_v of_o this_o head_n elsewhere_o nor_o here_o neither_o be_v little_o less_o than_o a_o demonstration_n that_o that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o head_n to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o when_o any_o one_o shall_v pretend_v to_o so_o high_a a_o prerogative_n and_o vast_a a_o dependence_n as_o this_o imply_v we_o may_v in_o reason_n expect_v he_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o produce_v some_o very_a good_a evidence_n of_o his_o right_n to_o it_o and_o therefore_o the_o mere_a silence_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v prejudice_n enough_o against_o the_o pretence_n but_o the_o silence_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o such_o place_n as_o i_o have_v produce_v be_v a_o direct_a argument_n against_o it_o nay_o last_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o far_o from_o give_v the_o least_o intimation_n of_o any_o such_o headship_n where_o the_o mention_n of_o it_o be_v unavoidable_a if_o it_o have_v be_v a_o divine_a constitution_n that_o it_o seem_v express_o to_o oppose_v it_o for_o st._n paul_n speak_v against_o those_o contention_n which_o happen_v by_o one_o saying_n i_o be_o of_o paul_n another_o i_o be_o of_o apollo_n a_o three_o i_o be_o of_o cephas_n he_o do_v not_o oppose_v cephas_n or_o peter_n to_o the_o rest_n as_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o say_v i_o be_o of_o peter_n but_o not_o i_o be_o of_o paul_n etc._n etc._n but_o utter_o reprove_v all_o such_o distinction_n and_o require_v they_o all_o to_o be_v unite_v in_o christ_n be_v christ_n divide_v say_v he_o be_v paul_n crucify_a for_o you_o or_o be_v you_o baptise_a in_o the_o name_n of_o paul_n plain_o show_v that_o to_o establish_v any_o mortal_a man_n as_o the_o centre_n of_o union_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v in_o effect_n to_o divide_v the_o authority_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o if_o we_o unite_v ourselves_o in_o such_o a_o head_n we_o may_v as_o well_o be_v baptize_v in_o his_o name_n and_o have_v he_o for_o our_o saviour_n too_o 2._o as_o little_a foundation_n be_v there_o in_o reason_n for_o this_o headship_n of_o the_o pope_n over_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o christ_n since_o it_o will_v necessary_o require_v that_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n even_o those_o that_o be_v at_o great_a distance_n from_o one_o another_o be_v reduce_v under_o his_o government_n and_o depend_v upon_o his_o authority_n the_o administration_n of_o which_o vast_a power_n and_o trust_n be_v incompatible_a to_o any_o mortal_a man._n be_v vest_v in_o a_o wise_a and_o good_a man_n it_o can_v be_v but_o of_o little_a benefit_n to_o a_o body_n so_o diffusive_a as_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o weak_a or_o vicious_a person_n it_o will_v become_v the_o instrument_n of_o pride_n tyranny_n oppression_n and_o division_n a_o small_a bishopric_n require_v the_o utmost_a care_n and_o prudence_n to_o manage_v it_o aright_o but_o what_o ability_n without_o a_o miracle_n can_v be_v sufficient_a for_o a_o tolerable_a discharge_n of_o so_o great_a a_o trust_n as_o the_o inspection_n and_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n from_o one_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o the_o other_o but_o the_o temptation_n to_o abuse_v such_o power_n will_v be_v infinite_a and_o the_o abuse_n themselves_o intolerable_a and_o hardly_o capable_a of_o redress_n as_o we_o see_v also_o by_o no_o small_a experience_n for_o after_o that_o that_o power_n be_v pretend_v to_o at_o rome_n and_o submit_v to_o by_o the_o western_a church_n the_o scandal_n &_o misery_n of_o this_o part_n of_o christendom_n grow_v to_o such_o a_o extremity_n that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v dissemble_v insomuch_o that_o the_o cardinal_n and_o prelate_n appoint_v by_o pope_n paul_n the_o three_o to_o advise_v concern_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n 4._o consil_n de_fw-fr emend_n eccl._n in_o rich_a l._n 4._o assure_v he_o that_o she_o be_v just_a fall_v headlong_o into_o ruin_n and_o that_o the_o chief_a cause_n be_v that_o the_o pope_n will_n and_o pleasure_n have_v be_v the_o rule_n of_o all_o his_o do_n and_o he_o that_o shall_v consider_v what_o a_o lewd_a and_o filthy_a place_n rome_n itself_o be_v grow_v by_o their_o own_o confession_n may_v observe_v from_o thence_o how_o likely_a it_o be_v that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n shall_v thrive_v in_o one_o man_n hand_n after_o another_o who_o be_v too_o busy_a to_o attend_v upon_o the_o reformation_n of_o most_o scandalous_a and_o cry_a disorder_n at_o home_n 3._o neither_o be_v there_o any_o colour_n in_o antiquity_n for_o this_o headship_n of_o the_o pope_n although_o they_o be_v the_o primitive_a father_n upon_o who_o authority_n chief_o they_o will_v support_v this_o usurpation_n the_o testimony_n which_o the_o cardinal_n have_v choose_v for_o his_o purpose_n be_v so_o far_o from_o it_o that_o one_o will_v wonder_v to_o see_v so_o weighty_a a_o superstructure_n lay_v upon_o so_o weak_a a_o foundation_n thus_o because_o s._n irenaeus_n say_v that_o every_o church_n i.e._n the_o faithful_a who_o be_v all_o about_o must_v needs_o resort_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n because_o of_o the_o more_o powerful_a principality_n i.e._n because_o the_o imperial_a city_n draw_v the_o business_n of_o the_o world_n to_o itself_o and_o by_o consequence_n christian_n in_o all_o part_n have_v occasion_n of_o recourse_n to_o it_o therefore_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o city_n be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n in_o the_o world._n because_o s._n cyprian_n call_v the_o roman_a the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o priest_n do_v arise_v and_o the_o matrix_fw-la and_o root_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n therefore_o he_o can_v mean_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o union_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o a_o part_n in_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n whereas_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o elsewhere_o he_o do_v free_o assert_v the_o independence_n of_o other_o bishop_n upon_o that_o bishop_n and_o of_o other_o episcopal_a church_n upon_o that_o church_n and_o consequent_o that_o he_o call_v it_o the_o principal_a church_n as_o be_v constitute_v in_o the_o principal_a city_n so_o rigaltius_n acknowledge_v and_o the_o spring_n of_o sacerdotal_a unity_n and_o the_o root_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n because_o bishop_n have_v occasion_n either_o to_o come_v up_o to_o rome_n or_o to_o send_v thither_o from_o all_o part_n do_v by_o their_o unity_n with_o the_o church_n there_o manifest_o declare_v their_o union_n to_o one_o another_o which_o be_v a_o convenience_n accrue_v to_o that_o church_n and_o to_o all_o other_o from_o the_o imperial_a city_n in_o which_o it_o be_v constitute_v but_o by_o no_o mean_n infer_v that_o other_o church_n be_v more_o oblige_v to_o union_n with_o she_o than_o she_o with_o other_o again_o because_o
have_v also_o divide_v from_o they_o for_o it_o be_v very_o idle_a to_o say_v that_o though_o we_o be_v member_n of_o that_o church_n when_o we_o first_o begin_v to_o differ_v from_o it_o yet_o that_o by_o our_o division_n we_o cut_v ourselves_o from_o her_o communion_n and_o therefore_o that_o the_o unity_n of_o her_o communion_n be_v not_o affect_v by_o our_o departure_n for_o thus_o we_o may_v as_o well_o excuse_v all_o the_o separation_n from_o we_o or_o from_o any_o other_o church_n viz._n that_o by_o separate_v from_o we_o they_o no_o long_o belong_v to_o we_o we_o be_v very_o confident_a that_o in_o all_o point_n of_o doctrine_n of_o any_o great_a moment_n we_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v agree_v much_o more_o together_o than_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o as_o for_o they_o who_o have_v go_v out_o from_o we_o they_o as_o little_o break_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o rest_n who_o they_o be_v go_v from_o as_o luther_n depart_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n break_v the_o unity_n of_o those_o who_o still_o remain_v in_o it_o so_o that_o either_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n must_v renounce_v her_o pretence_n to_o unity_n upon_o this_o account_n that_o sect_n and_o party_n have_v not_o break_v away_o from_o she_o or_o she_o must_v set_v up_o this_o wise_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n that_o all_o her_o member_n be_v unite_v except_o those_o that_o be_v divide_v from_o she_o which_o be_v a_o mark_n that_o will_v fit_v any_o society_n in_o the_o world._n but_o the_o cardinal_n do_v here_o offer_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o division_n of_o heretic_n from_o the_o church_n and_o a_o division_n from_o heresy_n that_o in_o their_o church_n they_o have_v a_o certain_a rule_n for_o end_v controversy_n viz._n the_o sentence_n of_o the_o chief_a pastor_n or_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o general_a council_n and_o therefore_o dissension_n do_v not_o arise_v among_o they_o from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n but_o from_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o devil_n now_o in_o answer_n to_o this_o not_o to_o be_v importunate_a with_o that_o question_n that_o if_o these_o be_v the_o way_n of_o compound_v controversy_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o their_o controversy_n still_o remain_v i_o will_v know_v 1._o why_o be_v not_o these_o the_o mean_n of_o compose_v those_o controversy_n that_o carry_v we_o away_o from_o they_o our_o father_n be_v once_o of_o their_o communion_n and_o those_o mean_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o retain_v they_o in_o it_o to_o say_v this_o arise_v from_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v to_o say_v in_o effect_n that_o the_o devil_n be_v in_o they_o which_o be_v a_o little_a too_o magisterial_a for_o a_o controvertist_n though_o he_o be_v a_o cardinal_n unless_o he_o resolve_v to_o ascribe_v it_o to_o the_o devil_n that_o they_o be_v take_v off_o from_o a_o implicit_a faith_n and_o a_o blind_a obedience_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v some_o people_n opinion_n when_o man_n begin_v to_o judge_n a_o little_a for_o themselves_o the_o spirit_n of_o heresy_n come_v in_o and_o then_o away_o they_o go_v but_o from_o hence_o i_o gather_v that_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o of_o a_o plenary_a council_n be_v no_o certain_a rule_n for_o end_v controversy_n nor_o certain_a mean_n of_o prevent_a division_n if_o some_o other_o mean_n be_v not_o use_v to_o keep_v man_n from_o try_v the_o spirit_n and_o prove_v all_o thing_n what_o they_o be_v the_o cardinal_n know_v very_o well_o but_o mention_v they_o not_o nor_o shall_v i_o need_v to_o do_v it_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n when_o whole_a country_n go_v off_o from_o that_o church_n as_o soon_o as_o they_o have_v a_o little_a consider_v what_o they_o have_v believe_v upon_o her_o authority_n i_o need_v not_o say_v whether_o the_o separation_n be_v cause_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o church_n or_o by_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o devil_n but_o leave_v the_o world_n to_o judge_n but_o 2._o how_o can_v those_o be_v certain_a mean_n of_o compose_v controversy_n concern_v which_o even_o in_o their_o own_o church_n there_o be_v the_o great_a controversy_n of_o all_o what_o deference_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o sentence_n of_o their_o chief_a pastor_n have_v always_o be_v a_o great_a dispute_n among_o they_o and_o the_o best_a if_o not_o the_o great_a part_n of_o their_o church_n do_v not_o think_v he_o infallible_a nor_o be_v it_o yet_o agree_v what_o be_v requisite_a to_o make_v the_o sentence_n of_o a_o general_a council_n decisive_a nor_o of_o those_o council_n that_o have_v contradict_v one_o another_o which_o they_o be_v to_o follow_v and_o that_o can_v be_v a_o certain_a rule_n for_o decide_v controversy_n which_o be_v itself_o controvert_v so_o that_o they_o have_v neither_o that_o union_n of_o member_n among_o themselves_o nor_o those_o certain_a mean_n of_o union_n which_o they_o pretend_v to_o have_v which_o i_o shall_v far_o show_v from_o a_o learned_a writer_n of_o their_o own_o the_o famous_a 353._o famous_a ep._n par_fw-fr 8._o p._n 353._o launoy_n who_o in_o a_o elaborate_a epistle_n to_o nic._n gatinaeus_fw-la whole_o overthrow_v the_o pretence_n in_o question_n for_o whether_o or_o no_o there_o be_v such_o a_o union_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o will_v serve_v the_o cardinal_n turn_n i_o will_v leave_v the_o reader_n to_o judge_n by_o this_o short_a and_o faithful_a account_n of_o that_o epistle_n first_o then_o he_o prove_v unanswerable_o by_o numerous_a and_o apposite_a testimony_n of_o every_o age_n that_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n till_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n the_o constant_a universal_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o church_n be_v this_o that_o it_o be_v the_o society_n of_o the_o faithful_a without_o ever_o insert_v into_o the_o definition_n of_o it_o any_o thing_n relate_v to_o its_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o pope_n or_o any_o other_o bishop_n as_o to_o a_o visible_a head._n nay_o 400.415_o p._n 400.415_o second_o that_o all_o the_o most_o learned_a lover_n of_o antiquity_n and_o godly_a opposer_n of_o novelty_n in_o the_o roman_a communion_n both_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o ever_o since_o have_v retain_v that_o notion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o stick_v to_o the_o ancient_a definition_n and_o three_o 415.419_o p._n 415.419_o that_o canisius_n and_o bellarmin_n have_v egregious_o innovate_v in_o their_o doctrine_n by_o add_v to_o the_o ancient_a definition_n such_o thing_n as_o be_v repugnant_a to_o all_o antiquity_n and_o mean_v while_o that_o they_o oppose_v each_o other_o canisius_n make_v it_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v under_o a_o capite_fw-la a_o uno_n &_o summo_fw-la post_fw-la christum_fw-la capite_fw-la monarch_n and_o give_v no_o place_n in_o his_o definition_n of_o it_o to_o other_o governor_n to_o who_o the_o church_n also_o be_v to_o be_v unite_v whereas_o bellarmin_n make_v a_o aristocracy_n wherein_o one_o be_v chief_a at_o least_o 2._o least_o esse_fw-la caetum_fw-la hominum_fw-la etc._n etc._n colligatum_fw-la sub_fw-la regimine_fw-la legitimorum_fw-la pastorum_fw-la ac_fw-la praecipue_fw-la unius_fw-la christi_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la vicarii_fw-la romani_fw-la pontificis_fw-la de_fw-fr eccl._n l._n 3._o c._n 2._o a_o temper_a and_o limit_a monarchy_n essential_a to_o the_o church_n go_v in_o this_o matter_n against_o antiquity_n against_o canisius_n and_o against_o himself_o in_o that_o he_o elsewhere_o make_v antiquity_n a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o say_v it_o be_v a_o demonstration_n of_o the_o novelty_n of_o a_o doctrine_n when_o the_o first_o author_n can_v be_v name_v and_o point_v to_o which_o be_v his_o own_o case_n and_o canisius_n as_o to_o this_o doctrine_n he_o reflect_v upon_o both_o of_o they_o 419.428_o p._n 418_o 419.428_o for_o ill_a logic_n in_o these_o definition_n and_o show_v how_o they_o destroy_v each_o other_o he_o censure_v the_o follower_n of_o canisius_n sharp_o and_o judicious_o and_o then_o remark_n that_o though_o bellarmine_n have_v great_a authority_n among_o divine_n yet_o canisius_n definition_n be_v more_o general_o receive_v and_o that_o for_o four_o reason_n because_o there_o be_v more_o court-flattery_n in_o it_o because_o it_o be_v put_v into_o catechism_n which_o the_o other_o be_v not_o and_o so_o stick_v by_o virtue_n of_o a_o early_a impression_n because_o some_o man_n be_v mad_a upon_o novelty_n and_o last_o other_o insufferable_o ignorant_a as_o to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o ancient_n tradition_n the_o principle_n of_o true_a theology_n four_o he_o think_v they_o have_v do_v harm_n to_o the_o church_n and_o that_o for_o these_o reason_n 1._o because_o 430._o p._n 430._o for_o want_v of_o logic_n they_o have_v confound_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o church_n with_o the_o state_n of_o it_o 2._o they_o have_v neglect_v st._n paul_n
direction_n of_o not_o be_v toss_v to_o and_o fro_o etc._n etc._n 3._o be_v condemn_v by_o tertullian_n who_o bid_v we_o adhere_v to_o what_o be_v first_o and_o 4._o by_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n and_o 5._o have_v give_v ill_a example_n by_o which_o the_o reformer_n can_v justify_v themselves_o and_o last_o have_v plain_o condemn_v several_a pope_n and_o the_o whole_a lateran_n council_n under_o innocent_a iii_o as_o not_o sufficient_o know_v what_o the_o church_n be_v since_o their_o notion_n of_o it_o can_v not_o content_v those_o which_o come_v after_o they_o a_o great_a injury_n and_o of_o dangerous_a consequence_n last_o upon_o a_o comparison_n of_o one_o with_o the_o other_o etc._n p._n 432_o etc._n etc._n and_o of_o both_o with_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n he_o look_v upon_o bellarmin_n definition_n as_o the_o better_a of_o the_o two_o because_o it_o may_v be_v so_o mollify_v by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o word_n praecipuè_fw-la chief_o which_o be_v in_o it_o as_o to_o admit_v of_o a_o tolerable_a reconciliation_n with_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o ancient_n which_o as_o he_o show_v can_v no_o way_n agree_v with_o that_o of_o canisius_n and_o upon_o the_o whole_a he_o conclude_v 450._o p._n 450._o that_o however_o bellarmin_n may_v be_v preferable_a if_o either_o of_o they_o be_v necessary_a yet_o it_o will_v be_v hard_a for_o catholic_n to_o make_v their_o complaint_n of_o innovate_a which_o they_o heap_v upon_o heretic_n to_o appear_v just_a so_o long_o as_o they_o themselves_o shall_v retain_v such_o a_o novel_a definition_n and_o that_o if_o gregory_n viith_n rule_n be_v observe_v viz._n that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v draw_v into_o example_n or_o authority_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o father_n then_o even_o this_o his_o definition_n though_o it_o have_v be_v receive_v yet_o aught_o to_o be_v reject_v to_o this_o purpose_n that_o accurate_a writer_n as_o he_o be_v deserve_o call_v by_o 319._o by_o letter_n to_o bp._n of_o linc._n p._n 319._o f._n walsh_n have_v argue_v to_o the_o utter_a confusion_n of_o the_o cardinal_n argument_n from_o union_n with_o the_o pope_n as_o head_n or_o of_o the_o member_n among_o themselves_o for_o how_o can_v that_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n now_o which_o never_o be_v think_v to_o belong_v to_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o for_o 1500_o year_n together_o and_o which_o their_o own_o most_o learned_a lover_n of_o antiquity_n and_o pious_a opposer_n of_o novelty_n do_v not_o think_v essential_a to_o it_o at_o this_o day_n and_o where_o be_v the_o so_o much_o boast_a consent_n of_o the_o member_n among_o themselves_o in_o all_o matter_n of_o faith_n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n be_v a_o article_n of_o faith._n i_o will_v know_v of_o those_o gentleman_n who_o be_v at_o such_o perfect_a agreement_n among_o themselves_o what_o this_o church_n be_v bellarmine_n answer_v one_o thing_n canisius_n another_o so_o contrary_a that_o if_o one_o speak_v true_a the_o other_o must_v needs_o have_v tell_v i_o that_o which_o be_v false_a and_o while_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o former_a be_v follow_v by_o some_o and_o that_o of_o the_o late_a which_o be_v the_o worse_o be_v more_o general_o receive_v launoy_n and_o many_o more_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a sort_n stick_v to_o the_o ancient_n who_o be_v as_o different_a from_o both_o as_o they_o be_v from_o one_o another_o and_o yet_o after_o all_o we_o must_v be_v tell_v that_o they_o be_v perfect_o agree_v in_o all_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o this_o invisible_a unintelligible_a union_n show_v plain_o that_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o true_a church_n one_o will_v hardly_o think_v that_o they_o be_v in_o earnest_n unless_o by_o union_n they_o mean_v a_o equal_a resolution_n to_o carry_v on_o the_o dispute_n as_o long_o as_o they_o can_v contend_v and_o no_o long_o which_o kind_n of_o union_n be_v to_o be_v meet_v with_o almost_o every_o term_n in_o westminster-hall_n where_o one_o may_v see_v two_o party_n prosecute_n one_o another_o with_o all_o imaginable_a vigour_n who_o yet_o resolve_v to_o be_v quiet_a when_o the_o bench_n have_v make_v they_o so_o not_o that_o the_o party_n who_o be_v cast_v in_o the_o suit_n must_v needs_o change_v his_o opinion_n of_o his_o own_o cause_n because_o the_o last_o verdict_n be_v against_o he_o but_o that_o if_o a_o new_a trial_n will_v not_o be_v grant_v he_o be_v bind_v to_o acquiesce_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o court_n because_o it_o have_v a_o sheriff_n with_o the_o posse_fw-la comitatus_fw-la to_o put_v it_o into_o execution_n thus_o they_o that_o make_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o they_o that_o make_v the_o sentence_n of_o a_o council_n the_o sentence_n of_o the_o church_n be_v unite_v in_o a_o resolution_n to_o stand_v to_o the_o arbitrement_n of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a sensible_a obligation_n upon_o they_o to_o profess_v that_o they_o will_v acquiesce_v in_o its_o determination_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o may_v undoubted_o quarrel_v among_o themselves_o about_o question_n of_o such_o mighty_a importance_n as_o that_o we_o mention_v even_o now_o and_o this_o without_o breach_n of_o union_n among_o themselves_o till_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o sentence_n of_o a_o plenary_a council_n or_o the_o sentence_n of_o both_o come_v to_o part_v they_o which_o yet_o will_v be_v long_o enough_o first_o if_o each_o side_n of_o the_o question_n be_v abet_v with_o numerous_a and_o able_a party_n that_o be_v at_o present_a both_o of_o they_o resolve_v to_o submit_v absolute_o to_o the_o church_n lest_o one_o of_o they_o upon_o a_o unseasonable_a sentence_n shall_v be_v provoke_v to_o change_v its_o resolution_n and_o thus_o as_o we_o observe_v before_o the_o question_n about_o the_o immaculate_a conception_n have_v be_v leave_v undecided_a so_o long_o lest_o by_o determine_v that_o a_o more_o dangerous_a question_n shall_v be_v raise_v by_o the_o disoblige_v party_n but_o if_o it_o shall_v so_o happen_v that_o the_o church_n can_v well_o avoid_v declare_v herself_o in_o such_o a_o case_n this_o new-fashioned_a union_n go_v forward_o still_o though_o she_o speak_v so_o ambiguous_o that_o each_o party_n fancy_v the_o sentence_n to_o be_v on_o its_o own_o side_n which_o be_v do_v often_o at_o trent_n with_o great_a application_n and_o art_n particular_o in_o the_o decree_n concern_v grace_n and_o assurance_n of_o be_v justify_v etc._n etc._n which_o be_v finish_v soto_n and_o vega_n differ_v not_o only_o as_o much_o but_o something_o more_o than_o they_o do_v at_o first_o for_o now_o they_o have_v a_o new_a question_n to_o debate_v viz._n on_o which_o side_n the_o council_n have_v decree_v and_o so_o they_o fall_v to_o write_v great_a book_n upon_o it_o against_o one_o another_o but_o for_o all_o this_o they_o be_v admirable_o agree_v because_o they_o agree_v in_o submission_n to_o the_o council_n i_o proceed_v to_o show_v iii_o that_o that_o unity_n which_o be_v indeed_o a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n we_o have_v and_o that_o in_o a_o much_o great_a degree_n than_o they_o which_o point_n will_v i_o hope_v yield_v some_o discourse_n that_o will_v be_v more_o useful_a than_o bare_o to_o discover_v mistake_v and_o expose_v sophistry_n for_o here_o i_o shall_v represent_v as_o well_o as_o i_o can_v the_o true_a ground_n and_o notion_n of_o church-unity_n and_o then_o see_v who_o have_v most_o reason_n to_o pretend_v to_o it_o they_o or_o we_o 1._o there_o be_v the_o unity_n of_o submit_v to_o one_o head_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o all_o other_o christian_a unity_n and_o therefore_o mention_v by_o st._n paul_n among_o the_o principal_a reason_n why_o the_o church_n be_v one_o body_n 5._o eph._n four_o 5._o one_o lord._n 2._o there_o be_v the_o unity_n of_o profess_v the_o common_a faith_n that_o be_v once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n which_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o summary_o expound_v in_o the_o ancient_a creed_n and_o therefore_o to_o one_o lord_n the_o apostle_n in_o the_o forementioned_a place_n add_v one_o faith._n 3._o there_o be_v a_o unity_n of_o sacrament_n in_o the_o church_n one_o baptism_n by_o which_o we_o be_v all_o admit_v into_o the_o same_o state_n of_o duty_n and_o of_o privilege_n undertake_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n and_o gain_v a_o right_a to_o the_o promise_v thereof_o thus_o say_v st._n paul_n 13._o 1_o cor._n twelve_o 13._o by_o one_o spirit_n we_o be_v all_o baptise_a into_o one_o body_n and_o the_o like_a unity_n be_v infer_v from_o the_o other_o sacrament_n 17._o 1_o cor._n x._o 17._o we_o be_v many_o be_v one_o bread_n and_o one_o body_n for_o we_o be_v all_o partaker_n of_o that_o one_o bread._n and_o again_o
other_o have_v to_o pretend_v that_o it_o be_v the_o character_n of_o its_o be_v a_o true_a church_n i_o desire_v in_o the_o second_o place_n that_o these_o follow_v particular_n may_v be_v consider_v 1._o that_o although_o we_o charge_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o many_o error_n and_o mistake_v yet_o we_o allow_v it_o to_o contain_v in_o it_o a_o mixture_n of_o truth_n now_o this_o very_a mixture_n of_o truth_n may_v perhaps_o be_v of_o sufficient_a force_n to_o make_v proselyte_n but_o than_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v but_o that_o such_o proselyte_n may_v likewise_o have_v embrace_v the_o error_n which_o be_v mix_v with_o it_o as_o well_o as_o the_o truth_n itself_o the_o indian_n who_o conversion_n to_o the_o romish_a faith_n i_o shall_v speak_v of_o afterward_o be_v not_o so_o void_a of_o reason_n but_o that_o if_o they_o compare_v the_o religion_n of_o their_o conqueror_n with_o their_o own_o worship_n they_o may_v be_v persuade_v to_o embrace_v the_o former_a rather_o than_o adhere_v still_o to_o the_o latter_a and_o although_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o be_v but_o half_o convert_v to_o the_o truth_n yet_o it_o be_v better_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v thus_o than_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v convert_v at_o all_o for_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o be_v much_o near_o the_o reception_n of_o the_o whole_a truth_n than_o they_o be_v former_o which_o be_v a_o great_a advantage_n and_o therefore_o we_o reckon_v those_o but_o a_o ill_a sort_n of_o protestant_n who_o will_v rather_o have_v man_n turk_n and_o infidel_n than_o of_o the_o romish_a church_n but_o at_o the_o same_o time_n the_o conversion_n of_o never_o so_o many_o to_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v no_o argument_n of_o its_o not_o be_v a_o corrupt_a church_n as_o long_o as_o we_o can_v prove_v it_o to_o maintain_v such_o gross_a error_n as_o it_o do_v although_o accompany_v with_o such_o a_o mixture_n of_o truth_n as_o may_v be_v of_o great_a force_n to_o bring_v over_o such_o as_o have_v before_o little_a or_o no_o knowledge_n thereof_o 2._o that_o the_o prevalency_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o its_o be_v a_o true_a church_n because_o it_o be_v so_o much_o alter_v from_o what_o it_o former_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o christianity_n the_o same_o with_o that_o which_o be_v deliver_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n to_o the_o saint_n afterward_o new_a doctrine_n insensible_o creep_v into_o and_o be_v receive_v by_o that_o church_n and_o at_o last_o matter_n come_v to_o be_v settle_v as_o we_o now_o find_v they_o in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n this_o have_v be_v often_o clear_v by_o learned_a man_n and_o in_o some_o of_o those_o discourse_n which_o have_v of_o late_o be_v write_v etc._n barrow_n of_o the_o pope_n suprem_fw-la discourse_v of_o transub_v disc_n concern_v the_o worship_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o the_o saint_n disc_n of_o commun_n in_o one_o kind_n vindicat._n of_o the_o answ_n to_o some_o late_a paper_n etc._n etc._n some_o of_o the_o new_a doctrine_n have_v be_v trace_v step_n by_o step_n and_o the_o manner_n now_o they_o come_v to_o be_v receive_v set_v down_o and_o in_o other_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v compare_v with_o herself_o and_o what_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v be_v show_v to_o be_v quite_o another_o thing_n from_o what_o be_v hold_v some_o age_n ago_o now_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o thing_n that_o be_v different_a shall_v be_v the_o distinguish_a character_n of_o that_o which_o be_v always_o the_o same_o since_o than_o i_o suppose_v it_o will_v be_v ready_o grant_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v always_o be_v the_o true_a church_n the_o efficacy_n of_o its_o doctrine_n can_v be_v no_o note_n thereof_o since_o in_o some_o age_n those_o doctrine_n have_v prevail_v in_o it_o which_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o those_o which_o have_v prevail_v in_o other_o 3._o that_o the_o prevalency_n of_o any_o doctrine_n can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n where_o those_o who_o embrace_v it_o be_v hinder_v from_o thorough_o examine_v it_o for_o without_o a_o thorough_a examination_n it_o never_o can_v be_v right_o understand_v and_o what_o efficacy_n can_v it_o have_v upon_o his_o mind_n who_o do_v not_o right_o understand_v it_o now_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n exact_v of_o the_o member_n of_o her_o communion_n a_o tame_a submission_n to_o and_o compliance_n with_o whatever_o she_o propose_v to_o their_o belief_n and_o practice_n and_o by_o forbid_v they_o the_o use_n of_o the_o scripture_n she_o take_v from_o they_o the_o use_n of_o that_o rule_n whereby_o they_o be_v to_o judge_n of_o the_o reasonableness_n of_o her_o proposal_n how_o then_o can_v the_o reception_n of_o her_o doctrine_n be_v a_o note_n of_o she_o be_v a_o true_a church_n when_o perhaps_o not_o one_o among_o a_o thousand_o of_o her_o member_n who_o receeive_v it_o be_v capable_a of_o understanding_n what_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v 4._o that_o the_o prevalency_n of_o any_o doctrine_n can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n where_o art_n and_o force_n be_v make_v use_n of_o to_o make_v it_o prevail_v for_o it_o be_v no_o difficult_a matter_n for_o cunning_a deceiver_n to_o impose_v upon_o unstable_a soul_n and_o it_o must_v be_v a_o great_a courage_n and_o constancy_n of_o mind_n which_o can_v make_v man_n for-go_a father_n and_o mother_n house_n and_o land_n etc._n etc._n for_o the_o sake_n of_o truth_n now_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v take_v this_o course_n to_o propagate_v her_o doctrine_n we_o may_v be_v assure_v by_o some_o of_o she_o own_o member_n there_o be_v say_v erasmus_n 23._o erasmus_n in_o annot._n in_o mat._n 23._o those_o who_o after_o a_o new_a example_n make_v christian_n by_o force_n but_o whilst_o they_o pretend_v the_o propagation_n of_o religion_n they_o do_v in_o reality_n study_v the_o enlargement_n of_o riches_n and_o power_n not_o unlike_o these_o be_v those_o monk_n who_o inveigle_v other_o to_o take_v upon_o they_o their_o order_n and_o do_v use_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o cunning_a to_o ensnare_v such_o as_o be_v young_a and_o unskilful_a and_o who_o neither_o understand_v themselves_o nor_o the_o nature_n of_o true_a religion_n and_o stapleton_n declare_v very_o free_o 1582._o stapleton_n epist_n dedic_n de_fw-fr oper_n justific_n edit_fw-la paris_n 1582._o eo_fw-la sane_fw-la loco_fw-la haereses_fw-la sunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n heresy_n be_v come_v to_o that_o pass_n that_o their_o gordian_a knot_n be_v not_o to_o be_v dissolve_v by_o art_n and_o industry_n but_o by_o the_o sword_n of_o alexander_n and_o the_o club_n of_o hercules_n be_v more_o fit_a to_o subdue_v they_o than_o the_o harp_n of_o apollo_n i_o may_v quote_v several_a other_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n but_o the_o constant_a practice_n of_o the_o inquisition_n in_o those_o place_n where_o it_o be_v receive_v and_o the_o extraordinary_a method_n which_o have_v of_o late_o be_v make_v use_n of_o in_o a_o neighbour_a nation_n to_o gain_v proselyte_n do_v sufficient_o show_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v more_o depend_v upon_o something_o else_o than_o upon_o the_o efficacy_n of_o her_o doctrine_n for_o the_o make_n of_o convert_v which_o will_v more_o full_o appear_v if_o in_o the_o three_o place_n we_o consider_v the_o insufficiency_n of_o the_o cardinal_n argument_n which_o be_v fetch_v first_o from_o the_o scripture_n second_o from_o what_o happen_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n three_o from_o the_o particular_a instance_n which_o he_o give_v of_o conversion_n wrought_v by_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n first_o as_o to_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v quote_v ps_n 19.7_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v perfect_a convert_v the_o soul_n and_o heb._n 4.12_o for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v quick_a and_o powerful_a and_o sharp_a than_o any_o two-edged_a sword_n pierce_v even_o to_o the_o divide_v asunder_o of_o soul_n and_o spirit_n and_o of_o the_o joint_n and_o marrow_n and_o be_v a_o discerner_n of_o the_o thought_n and_o intent_n of_o the_o heart_n it_o may_v be_v answer_v 1._o that_o the_o latter_a of_o these_o be_v by_o several_a expositor_n interpret_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o his_o doctrine_n 2._o that_o if_o they_o be_v both_o interpret_v of_o the_o efficacy_n of_o any_o doctrine_n yet_o that_o the_o efficacy_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o be_v whole_o internal_a as_o we_o before_o observe_v and_o consequent_o such_o as_o can_v be_v account_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n for_o the_o note_n of_o a_o church_n must_v be_v what_o any_o one_o can_v come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o 3._o suppose_v by_o these_o word_n
which_o that_o great_a historian_n though_o a_o gentile_a profess_v in_o his_o writing_n the_o peloponesian_a war_n he_o have_v lose_v the_o great_a part_n of_o this_o note_n and_o we_o be_v excuse_v the_o pain_n of_o examine_v it_o 〈◊〉_d thucydid_a l._n 1._o p._n 16._o a._n b._n c._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o that_o historian_n tell_v we_o he_o can_v multiply_v fable_n as_o other_o have_v do_v and_o they_o may_v perhaps_o be_v more_o divertive_a to_o a_o injudicious_a reader_n but_o his_o regard_n shall_v be_v to_o what_o be_v true_a and_o certain_a which_o all_o that_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o the_o certainty_n of_o thing_n shall_v judge_v much_o more_o profitable_a however_o proceed_v we_o to_o the_o examination_n of_o this_o note_n as_o the_o cardinal_n have_v think_v fit_a to_o propose_v it_o in_o proof_n of_o his_o church_n as_o to_o this_o he_o premise_v this_o twofold_a foundation_n 1._o that_o miracle_n be_v necessary_a to_o evince_v any_o new_a faith_n or_o extraordinary_a mission_n 2._o that_o miracle_n be_v efficacious_a and_o sufficient_a by_o the_o former_a he_o tell_v we_o may_v be_v deduce_v that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v among_o we_o protestant_n by_o the_o latter_a that_o it_o be_v most_o assure_o among_o they_o 1._o as_o to_o the_o necessity_n of_o miracle_n he_o quote_v moses_n four_o moses_n exod._n four_o st._n matthew_n x._o matthew_n matth._n x._o and_o st._n john_n xv_o john_n joh._n xv_o he_o further_o prove_v it_o by_o a_o similitude_n of_o one_o necessary_o show_v his_o order_n receive_v from_o his_o diocesan_n by_o which_o he_o be_v authorise_a to_o preach_v and_o by_o a_o quotation_n from_o st._n austin_n and_o the_o concession_n of_o melancthon_n one_o of_o the_o reform_a persuasion_n all_o which_o be_v needless_a and_o the_o similitude_n too_o weak_a and_o inconclusive_a 2._o as_o to_o the_o efficacy_n and_o sufficiency_n of_o miracle_n he_o prove_v this_o partly_o as_o they_o be_v the_o seal_n and_o testimonial_n god_n use_v without_o who_o immediate_a power_n they_o can_v not_o be_v perform_v and_o who_o will_v by_o no_o mean_n bear_v witness_n to_o a_o lye._n and_o therefore_o where_o either_o turk_n or_o pagan_n jew_n heretic_n or_o false_a prophet_n have_v pretend_v to_o any_o extraordinary_a feat_n or_o accomplishment_n of_o this_o kind_n either_o they_o have_v appear_v the_o mere_a trick_n and_o delusion_n of_o the_o devil_n or_o else_o in_o the_o attempt_v they_o have_v make_v they_o have_v be_v public_o disgrace_v and_o disappoint_v so_o the_o prophet_n of_o baal_n simon_n magus_n several_a of_o the_o donatist_n luther_n and_o calvin_n in_o the_o application_n of_o the_o whole_a for_o the_o proof_n of_o his_o church_n and_o the_o utter_a exclusion_n of_o we_o from_o all_o title_n to_o the_o denomination_n and_o benefit_n of_o a_o church_n he_o give_v a_o summary_n of_o miracle_n in_o every_o distinct_a age_n by_o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o no_o other_o for_o that_o be_v the_o whole_a drift_n of_o his_o argument_n have_v be_v all_o along_o signalise_v as_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n in_o the_o first_o age_n he_o mention_n the_o miracle_n of_o the_o holy_a jesus_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o the_o second_o those_o of_o the_o christian_a soldier_n under_o antonius_n the_o emperor_n in_o the_o three_o those_o of_o gregory_n thaumaturgus_n in_o the_o four_o those_o of_o anthony_n hilarion_n and_o other_o in_o the_o five_o several_a mention_v by_o st._n austin_n as_o do_v in_o his_o time_n in_o the_o six_o some_o wonder_n do_v by_o pope_n viz._n john_n and_o agapetus_n in_o the_o seven_o miracle_n wrought_v in_o england_n by_o austin_n the_o monk_n and_o his_o company_n in_o the_o eight_o st._n cuthbert_n and_o st._n john_n in_o england_n in_o the_o nine_o those_o of_o tharasius_n and_o great_a number_n by_o sebastian_n the_o martyr_n in_o the_o ten_o st._n rombold_n st._n dunstan_n and_o a_o certain_a king_n of_o poland_n with_o other_o in_o the_o eleven_o st._n edward_n st._n anselm_n and_o to_o make_v up_o the_o number_n honest_a hildebrand_n or_o pope_n gregory_n vii_o in_o the_o twelve_o st._n malachy_n and_o st._n bernard_n in_o the_o thirteen_o st._n francis_n and_o bonaventure_n st._n dominic_n and_o other_o in_o the_o fourteen_o st._n bernardinus_fw-la and_o catharine_n of_o senna_n in_o the_o fifteen_o vincentius_n st._n anthonine_n and_o other_o and_o last_o in_o the_o cardinal_n be_v own_o age_n franciscus_n de_fw-fr paula_n and_o the_o holy_a xaviere_n among_o the_o indian_n thus_o have_v lay_v down_o the_o main_a scheme_n of_o the_o cardinal_n be_v manage_v this_o note_n which_o he_o call_v the_o glory_n of_o miracle_n i_o shall_v show_v the_o weakness_n of_o this_o proof_n as_o it_o concern_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n distinct_a and_o exclusive_o to_o that_o of_o the_o reform_a and_o that_o under_o these_o three_o head_n i._o that_o mere_a miracle_n without_o any_o other_o consideration_n at_o all_o be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a note_n of_o any_o church_n or_o religion_n whatever_o ii_o much_o less_o be_v those_o miracle_n which_o be_v allege_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n any_o tolerable_a proof_n or_o confirmation_n of_o these_o particular_a doctrine_n or_o practice_n wherein_o we_o of_o the_o reform_a church_n do_v differ_v from_o they_o iii_o and_o last_o we_o of_o the_o reform_a church_n as_o we_o do_v not_o pretend_v to_o the_o work_n of_o miracle_n in_o our_o age_n so_o if_o we_o do_v we_o can_v pretend_v to_o prove_v nothing_o by_o they_o but_o what_o have_v be_v already_o sufficient_o prove_v by_o the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n i._o that_o mere_a miracle_n without_o any_o other_o consideration_n at_o all_o be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a note_n of_o any_o church_n or_o religion_n whatever_o i_o add_v this_o passage_n without_o any_o other_o consideration_n at_o all_o because_o those_o miracle_n which_o be_v record_v and_o embrace_v by_o all_o the_o faithful_a as_o part_v of_o the_o undeniable_a proof_n of_o christianity_n be_v attend_v with_o all_o the_o circumstance_n that_o be_v requisite_a to_o strengthen_v and_o enforce_v they_o whereas_o those_o miracle_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n pretend_v to_o in_o confirmation_n of_o some_o doctrine_n which_o we_o differ_v from_o they_o in_o they_o be_v attend_v with_o none_o of_o the_o requisite_a consideration_n to_o enforce_v they_o i._n e._n they_o be_v produce_v mere_o to_o confirm_v some_o particular_a doctrine_n which_o doctrine_n have_v no_o antecedent_n advantage_n of_o be_v plain_o and_o express_o lay_v down_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n nor_o the_o miracle_n themselves_o of_o be_v foretell_v by_o any_o prophecy_n as_o for_o those_o miracle_n that_o in_o primitive_a day_n be_v wrought_v to_o confirm_v christianity_n in_o general_n it_o be_v the_o infinite_a goodness_n of_o providence_n to_o make_v they_o of_o that_o nature_n and_o to_o order_v the_o performance_n of_o they_o in_o that_o way_n that_o there_o be_v no_o room_n leave_v for_o the_o honest_a consider_v mind_n to_o reject_v they_o either_o as_o to_o matter_n of_o fact_n to_o mistrust_v that_o they_o be_v never_o do_v or_o as_o to_o their_o force_n and_o efficacy_n to_o suspect_v that_o they_o do_v not_o most_o full_o confirm_v what_o they_o be_v produce_v for_o 1._o as_o to_o matter_n of_o fact_n they_o be_v do_v so_o public_o and_o in_o the_o view_n of_o those_o that_o be_v the_o great_a enemy_n and_o after_o they_o be_v do_v they_o be_v report_v partly_o so_o soon_o in_o a_o age_n when_o there_o be_v so_o many_o then_o alive_a that_o can_v have_v contradict_v the_o report_n if_o not_o well_o ground_v and_o partly_o with_o so_o much_o hazard_n that_o as_o the_o very_o report_v they_o expose_v they_o to_o the_o rage_n of_o the_o enemy_n to_o the_o uttermost_a so_o the_o falsehood_n of_o they_o if_o it_o have_v appear_v have_v bring_v upon_o they_o the_o scorn_n of_o those_o that_o have_v be_v kindly_o incline_v whereas_o the_o miracle_n that_o be_v more_o peculiar_o appropriate_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o be_v never_o pretend_v to_o be_v do_v but_o among_o those_o of_o their_o own_o communion_n never_o for_o the_o conviction_n of_o any_o one_o gainsayer_n no_o one_o of_o the_o reform_a religion_n have_v ever_o once_o be_v a_o eye-witness_n to_o any_o of_o they_o eucharist_n they_o vid._n pref._n to_o the_o school_n of_o the_o eucharist_n they_o come_v hand_v to_o we_o from_o a_o dark_a and_o fabulous_a age_n report_v of_o person_n who_o themselves_o hint_n no_o such_o thing_n of_o themselves_o in_o any_o of_o their_o own_o write_n but_o rather_o to_o the_o contrary_a as_o may_v be_v see_v more_o afterward_o and_o the_o story_n they_o have_v frame_v give_v they_o no_o hazard_n except_v loss_n of_o reputation_n with_o all_o wise_a man_n for_o
it_o be_v in_o a_o time_n when_o the_o monk_n plenty_n and_o ease_n and_o freedom_n from_o all_o danger_n give_v they_o a_o luxurancy_n of_o thought_n and_o fancy_n and_o the_o invention_n itself_o a_o title_n to_o the_o favour_n of_o great_a man_n and_o perhaps_o to_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o honour_n to_o be_v do_v for_o they_o after_o death_n so_o st._n bernard_n have_v the_o fame_n of_o miracle_n affix_v to_o he_o by_o those_o that_o come_v after_o he_o as_o he_o have_v do_v to_o st._n malachy_n in_o the_o same_o age_n with_o himself_o so_o also_o st._n anthonine_n tell_v his_o story_n of_o st._n vincentius_n and_o surius_n his_o of_o he_o but_o then_o 2._o beside_o matter_n of_o fact_n wherein_o as_o to_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o thing_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o credibility_n there_o be_v so_o great_a a_o difference_n so_o also_o be_v there_o in_o the_o force_n and_o efficacy_n of_o the_o one_o and_o of_o the_o other_o to_o confirm_v what_o they_o be_v produce_v for_o there_o be_v a_o most_o unquestionable_a force_n in_o the_o argument_n take_v from_o those_o miracle_n that_o be_v for_o the_o first_o proof_n of_o christianity_n but_o not_o so_o in_o the_o other_o as_o we_o shall_v see_v anon_o there_o be_v these_o circumstance_n that_o high_o recommend_v the_o primitive_a miracle_n 1._o that_o those_o that_o be_v wrought_v be_v general_o very_o beneficial_a to_o human_a nature_n do_v mighty_a office_n of_o kindness_n towards_o those_o who_o they_o be_v wrought_v upon_o such_o as_o heal_v the_o sick_a raise_v the_o dead_a restore_v the_o deaf_a the_o lame_a and_o the_o blind_a etc._n etc._n all_o which_o bear_v a_o excellent_a proportion_n to_o the_o great_a design_n of_o redeem_v and_o save_v mankind_n and_o if_o at_o any_o time_n there_o be_v any_o mixture_n of_o severity_n in_o the_o very_a act_n such_o as_o strike_v some_o dead_a by_o a_o word_n be_v speak_v or_o put_v other_o into_o the_o immediate_a possession_n of_o the_o devil_n by_o the_o act_n of_o excommunication_n yet_o be_v even_o this_o do_v either_o in_o kindness_n to_o posterity_n by_o fix_v in_o the_o first_o institution_n of_o thing_n one_o or_o two_o stand_a pillar_n of_o salt_n that_o may_v be_v for_o example_n and_o admonition_n to_o after_o age_n against_o some_o practice_n that_o may_v otherwise_o in_o time_n destroy_v christianity_n as_o in_o the_o first_o instance_n of_o ananias_n and_o sapphira_n against_o the_o sin_n of_o hypocrisy_n or_o else_o to_o some_o good_a purpose_n for_o the_o person_n themselves_o as_o in_o the_o last_o instance_n of_o excommunication_n so_o the_o incestuous_a person_n be_v adjudge_v by_o st._n paul_n to_o deliver_v such_o a_o one_o to_o satan_n for_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o flesh_n that_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n 1_o cor._n v._o 5._o none_o of_o these_o miracle_n be_v such_o useless_a ludicrous_a action_n as_o the_o romish_a author_n have_v fill_v their_o history_n with_o such_o as_o that_o of_o st._n berinus_fw-la who_o be_v full_a sail_n for_o france_n and_o half_a his_o voyage_n over_o find_v he_o have_v forget_v something_o walk_v out_o upon_o the_o sea_n and_o return_v back_o dry-shod_a such_o again_o as_o st._n francis_n bespeak_v the_o ass_n in_o the_o kind_a compellation_n of_o brother_n to_o stand_v quiet_a till_o he_o have_v do_v preach_v and_o not_o disturb_v the_o solemnity_n such_o as_o st._n mochua_n by_o his_o prayer_n and_o staff_n hinder_v the_o poor_a lamb_n from_o suck_v their_o dam_n when_o they_o be_v run_v towards_o they_o with_o full_a appetite_n and_o s._n fintanus_n keep_v off_o the_o calf_n from_o the_o cow_n that_o they_o can_v neither_o of_o they_o move_v towards_o one_o another_o such_o in_o a_o word_n as_o st._n finnianus_n and_o st._n ruadanus_n sport_v their_o miracle_n with_o each_o other_o as_o if_o they_o have_v the_o power_n give_v they_o for_o no_o other_o end_n but_o mere_a trial_n of_o skill_n or_o some_o pretty_a diversion_n to_o bystander_n finniani_n bystander_n v._o colgan_n in_o vit._n mochua_n &_o finniani_n 2._o as_o those_o primitive_a miracle_n be_v general_o very_o beneficial_a to_o human_a nature_n so_o the_o design_n of_o they_o be_v of_o the_o great_a importance_n and_o significancy_n imaginable_a and_o this_o both_o design_n and_o the_o miracle_n that_o shall_v confirm_v it_o plain_o lay_v down_o beforehand_o in_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o design_n be_v to_o bring_v in_o and_o establish_v entire_o a_o excellent_a religion_n a_o perfect_o new_a dispensation_n of_o thing_n nay_o further_o to_o abolish_v a_o former_a model_n and_o constitution_n of_o thing_n that_o have_v be_v former_o bring_v in_o and_o establish_v by_o the_o very_a same_o argument_n of_o miracle_n it_o be_v not_o to_o establish_v any_o one_o particular_a doctrine_n that_o may_v be_v either_o in_o supplement_n to_o or_o direct_a contradiction_n of_o what_o have_v be_v hitherto_o deliver_v but_o to_o settle_v one_o perfect_a and_o entire_a standard_n that_o shall_v be_v the_o rule_n and_o measure_n of_o all_o that_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v and_o practice_v to_o the_o world_n end._n it_o be_v true_a the_o jewish_a dispensation_n as_o it_o be_v fix_v and_o model_v whole_o at_o the_o appointment_n of_o god_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o mediator_n moses_n so_o it_o be_v also_o enforce_v by_o such_o visible_a power_n from_o above_o that_o abundant_o authorise_a the_o institution_n and_o give_v it_o that_o confirmation_n so_o long_o as_o it_o be_v frame_v and_o the_o sign_v to_o continue_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o kind_n of_o miracle_n pretend_v but_o shall_v then_o have_v its_o trial_n by_o this_o standard_n and_o if_o any_o thing_n shall_v be_v wrought_v with_o design_n to_o draw_v any_o off_o from_o their_o present_a establishment_n the_o sign_n or_o wonder_n shall_v for_o that_o reason_n be_v reject_v and_o the_o pretender_n to_o it_o though_o he_o have_v make_v himself_o signal_n in_o perform_v it_o immediate_o condemn_v deut._n 13._o begin_v but_o then_o as_o thing_n be_v then_o settle_v for_o a_o continuance_n of_o time_n only_o and_o the_o change_n of_o the_o whole_a scene_n be_v determine_v on_o the_o appear_a of_o the_o promise_a meffiah_n so_o this_o change_n and_o the_o person_n that_o shall_v effect_v it_o with_o all_o the_o mighty_a work_n he_o shall_v perform_v and_o the_o vast_a success_n of_o these_o miracle_n according_o be_v all_o point_a out_o beforehand_o by_o express_a prophecy_n utter_v under_o this_o very_a mosaic_a dispensation_n the_o lord_n thy_o god_n will_v raise_v unto_o thou_o a_o prophet_n from_o the_o midst_n of_o thou_o of_o thy_o brethren_n like_v unto_o i_o unto_o he_o you_o shall_v hearken_v deut._n xviii_o 15._o to_o this_o prophecy_n st._n stephen_n appeal_v in_o the_o defence_n he_o make_v for_o himself_o act_v seven_o 37._o and_o this_o be_v the_o whole_a indication_n our_o saviour_n think_v fit_a to_o give_v john_n the_o baptist_n that_o himself_o be_v the_o person_n that_o shall_v come_v viz._n the_o blind_a receive_v their_o sight_n the_o leper_n be_v cleanse_v the_o deaf_a hear_v 5._o mat._n xi_o 5._o the_o lame_a walk_n the_o dead_a be_v raise_v up_o and_o to_o the_o poor_a the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v as_o have_v be_v prophesy_v before_o now_o if_o the_o cardinal_n can_v have_v show_v either_o that_o a_o new_a dispensation_n of_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v introduce_v after_o what_o have_v be_v establish_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n or_o that_o what_o be_v to_o be_v introduce_v shall_v be_v also_o a_o fresh_a confirm_v by_o some_o new_a endowment_n of_o power_n from_o above_o and_o that_o according_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n upon_o just_a warrant_n have_v introduce_v and_o by_o her_o miracle_n have_v authorize_v this_o great_a revolution_n here_o indeed_o have_v be_v a_o reasonable_a proposal_n to_o our_o faith._n but_o as_o there_o be_v no_o hint_n of_o this_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n nor_o no_o prediction_n of_o miracle_n to_o confirm_v it_o so_o if_o any_o such_o thing_n be_v now_o pretend_v in_o any_o thing_n of_o this_o kind_n they_o be_v no_o warrant_n to_o we_o to_o embrace_v it_o there_o be_v i_o confess_v a_o considerable_a change_n foretell_v and_o there_o be_v also_o a_o prophecy_n as_o to_o those_o wonder_n that_o shall_v be_v wrought_v for_o the_o justify_n of_o this_o change_n but_o then_o this_o change_n have_v no_o other_o denomination_n than_o that_o of_o apostasy_n or_o fall_v away_o and_o the_o wonder_n by_o which_o it_o must_v be_v justify_v be_v to_o be_v no_o other_o than_o lie_a wonder_n with_o all_o deceiveableness_n of_o unrighteousness_n in_o they_o that_o perish_v 2_o thes_n two_o 9_o 10._o and_o as_o to_o this_o change_n and_o these_o wonder_n if_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a communion_n
think_v fit_a to_o challenge_v they_o to_o themselves_o we_o shall_v not_o contend_v with_o they_o in_o that_o affair_n here_o therefore_o be_v the_o just_a foundation_n upon_o which_o those_o divine_a miracle_n that_o be_v wrought_v for_o confirmation_n of_o christianity_n do_v rest_n viz._n that_o the_o design_n of_o they_o be_v to_o bring_v in_o entire_o a_o new_a dispensation_n of_o thing_n and_o that_o this_o new_a dispensation_n of_o thing_n have_v be_v predetermine_v by_o god_n and_o the_o miracle_n that_o be_v to_o confirm_v it_o when_o bring_v in_o have_v their_o testimonial_n beforehand_o by_o phrophecy_n and_o this_o testimony_n s._n peter_n build_v upon_o as_o have_v something_o in_o it_o of_o great_a certainty_n than_o the_o miracle_n themselves_o 2_o pet._n 1.16_o 19_o the_o miracle_n he_o mention_n when_o he_o tell_v they_o we_o have_v not_o follow_v cunning_o devise_v fable_n when_o we_o make_v know_v unto_o you_o the_o power_n and_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n but_o be_v eye-witness_n of_o his_o majesty_n for_o he_o receive_v from_o god_n the_o father_n honour_n and_o glory_n when_o there_o come_v such_o a_o voice_n from_o the_o excellent_a glory_n this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n etc._n etc._n and_o this_o voice_n we_o hear_v when_o we_o be_v with_o he_o in_o the_o mount_n but_o then_o the_o apostle_n add_v we_o have_v a_o more_o sure_a word_n of_o prophecy_n etc._n etc._n and_o this_o be_v that_o i_o have_v propound_v to_o show_v namely_o that_o mere_a miracle_n without_o any_o other_o consideration_n at_o all_o be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a note_n or_o proof_n of_o any_o church_n or_o religion_n whatever_o the_o word_n miracle_n i_o take_v in_o the_o comprehensive_a sense_n and_o mean_v all_o those_o sign_n or_o wonder_n any_o prodigious_a effect_n that_o appear_v to_o we_o out_o of_o the_o course_n and_o order_n and_o power_n of_o nature_n which_o no_o one_o can_v ordinary_o do_v himself_o nor_o assign_v any_o reason_n in_o mature_a for_o the_o do_v of_o they_o such_o thing_n may_v certain_o be_v do_v and_o yet_o be_v no_o proof_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o divinity_n of_o that_o doctrine_n they_o will_v advance_v it_o be_v not_o questionable_a but_o there_o may_v be_v some_o miracle_n wrought_v wherein_o the_o finger_n of_o god_n be_v so_o plain_o discernible_a that_o it_o will_v render_v those_o that_o reject_v they_o inexcusable_a such_o as_o once_o extort_a that_o confession_n from_o the_o magician_n in_o egypt_n exod._n viij_o 19_o and_o such_o as_o our_o saviour_n do_v so_o avow_v luke_n xi_o 20._o that_o from_o thence_o he_o charge_v the_o jew_n with_o the_o unpardonable_a sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o may_v be_v observe_v by_o compare_v luke_n xi_o from_o v._o 15_o to_o 20._o with_o mat._n twelve_o from_o v._o 24_o to_o 32._o but_o then_o there_o have_v be_v considerable_a sign_n show_v and_o wonder_v do_v of_o which_o no_o reason_n in_o nature_n can_v be_v give_v and_o yet_o make_v no_o proof_n of_o their_o own_o divinity_n and_o consequent_o not_o of_o that_o they_o be_v advance_v for_o such_o be_v those_o which_o janne_n and_o jambres_n when_o they_o withstand_v moses_n perform_v in_o pharaoh_n view_n these_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o one_o consent_n do_v acknowledge_v to_o have_v be_v the_o mere_a delusion_n of_o the_o devil_n otherwise_o if_o the_o mere_a do_v such_o great_a thing_n shall_v be_v a_o just_a proof_n of_o their_o be_v send_v from_o god_n what_o shall_v we_o think_v of_o the_o feat_n of_o apollonius_n tyaneus_n as_o they_o be_v report_v by_o philostratus_n if_o but_o the_o most_o or_o some_o part_n of_o what_o he_o in_o a_o just_a history_n of_o eight_o book_n tell_v we_o be_v true_a as_o that_o he_o make_v a_o tree_n speak_v to_o he_o that_o he_o put_v to_o flight_v a_o hobgoblin_n which_o in_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o beautiful_a virgin_n make_v love_n to_o he_o that_o he_o foretell_v many_o thing_n and_o particular_o that_o while_o he_o himself_o be_v in_o ephesus_n he_o declare_v the_o death_n of_o the_o emperor_n domitian_n at_o that_o instant_n when_o they_o be_v actual_o commit_v it_o at_o rome_n with_o abundance_n more_o of_o that_o nature_n which_o it_o be_v too_o tedious_a to_o recite_v indeed_o it_o be_v not_o improbable_a but_o that_o philostratus_n be_v a_o right_a sophister_n in_o the_o modern_a sense_n and_o as_o very_o a_o wag_n at_o invention_n for_o his_o apollonius_n as_o any_o monk_n in_o christendom_n have_v be_v for_o any_o of_o his_o saint_n photius_n his_o censure_n of_o he_o be_v that_o the_o whole_a story_n be_v fabulous_a and_o have_v instanced_a in_o that_o passage_n of_o apollonius_n fill_v some_o vessel_n with_o water_n and_o other_o with_o wind_n by_o which_o he_o can_v by_o turn_n water_v the_o earth_n after_o a_o long_a drought_n and_o blow_v the_o shower_n off_o and_o dry_a the_o earth_n again_o he_o conclude_v such_o like_a thing_n as_o these_o full_a of_o delirancy_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n have_v he_o prodigious_o feign_v of_o he_o that_o the_o whole_a study_n of_o a_o vain_a labour_n throughout_o all_o his_o eight_o book_n be_v lose_v and_o to_o no_o purpose_n edit_n purpose_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d phot._n cens_fw-la in_fw-ge mit_fw-ge philostr_n paris_n edit_n the_o same_o kind_n of_o esteem_n for_o this_o author_n do_v eusebius_n profess_v in_o his_o answer_n to_o hierocles_n who_o in_o two_o book_n which_o he_o entitle_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d have_v set_v up_o apollonius_n in_o competition_n with_o the_o holy_a jesus_n he_o question_n the_o veracity_n of_o philostratus_n in_o many_o thing_n though_o he_o be_v willing_a to_o allow_v apollonius_n the_o reputation_n of_o a_o person_n of_o considerable_a wisdom_n initium_fw-la wisdom_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n euseb_n contra_fw-la hierocl_n versus_fw-la initium_fw-la however_o let_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n be_v what_o it_o will_v it_o be_v reasonable_a enough_o to_o set_v these_o wonder_n of_o apollonius_n at_o least_o against_o those_o miracle_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n boast_v of_o distinct_a from_o those_o which_o confirm_v our_o common_a religion_n because_o the_o authority_n seem_v equal_a and_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n much_o of_o the_o same_o kind_n again_o what_o shall_v we_o think_v of_o those_o prodigy_n at_o delphos_n as_o they_o be_v report_v by_o pausanias_n in_o phocic_n that_o when_o brennus_n and_o the_o gaul_n come_v against_o it_o and_o the_o people_n miserable_o affright_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o oracle_n the_o god_n there_o bid_v they_o not_o fear_v he_o assure_v they_o he_o will_v defend_v his_o own_o according_o there_o break_n out_o earthquake_n and_o thunder_n and_o lightning_n and_o apparition_n of_o several_a of_o their_o hero_n former_o dead_a all_o the_o day_n long_o and_o in_o the_o night_n time_n unwonted_a and_o unsufferable_a rigour_n of_o cold_a mighty_a stone_n and_o top_n of_o the_o rock_n tear_v from_o parnassus_n and_o throw_v so_o furious_o among_o the_o barbarian_n that_o not_o only_o one_o or_o two_o but_o some_o hundred_o of_o man_n either_o as_o they_o stand_v upon_o the_o guard_n or_o be_v sleep_v together_o be_v slay_v by_o they_o and_o by_o these_o mean_n be_v the_o whole_a army_n defeat_v dissipate_v and_o destroy_v and_o thus_o indeed_o the_o father_n all_o along_o do_v not_o suppose_v but_o that_o very_o great_a thing_n may_v be_v do_v by_o heathen_n or_o heretic_n which_o yet_o can_v be_v no_o proof_n that_o either_o of_o they_o be_v in_o the_o right_n origen_n in_o his_o first_o book_n against_o celsus_n take_v notice_n of_o the_o objection_n celsus_n make_v about_o the_o conjurer_n in_o egypt_n that_o they_o can_v put_v demon_n to_o flight_n can_v blow_v off_o disease_n with_o their_o breath_n can_v call_v up_o the_o spirit_n of_o hero_n can_v dress_v up_o the_o appearance_n of_o table_n furnish_v with_o all_o manner_n of_o delicacy_n etc._n etc._n which_o thing_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o fact_n he_o do_v not_o seem_v to_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o but_o to_o invalidate_v the_o force_n of_o they_o from_o a_o consideration_n of_o the_o person_n that_o wrought_v they_o as_o be_v man_n of_o no_o good_a life_n and_o again_o in_o his_o second_o book_n against_o celsus_n he_o instance_n in_o this_o comparison_n of_o miracle_n and_o give_v this_o note_n to_o discern_v those_o that_o be_v divine_a from_o the_o juggle_v of_o impostor_n or_o cheat_n of_o the_o devil_n viz_o to_o observe_v the_o life_n and_o manner_n of_o those_o that_o perform_v they_o and_o also_o the_o effect_n when_o perform_v that_o be_v whether_o they_o bring_v hurt_v and_o damage_n to_o person_n or_o whether_o they_o correct_v their_o manner_n etc._n etc._n eccles_n etc._n no_o &_o prophetare_fw-la &_o doemona_n excludere_fw-la &_o
virtutes_fw-la magnas_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la facere_fw-la sublimis_fw-la utique_fw-la &_o admirabilis_fw-la res_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la tamen_fw-la regnum_fw-la coeleste_fw-la consequitur_fw-la quisquis_fw-la in_o his_o omnibus_fw-la invenitur_fw-la nisi_fw-la recti_fw-la &_o justi_fw-la itineris_fw-la observatione_fw-la gradiatur_fw-la cypr._n de_fw-fr unitat._n eccles_n st._n cyprian_n discourse_v of_o some_o that_o have_v break_v off_o from_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o suppose_v it_o possible_a for_o they_o to_o signalise_v themselves_o by_o miracle_n quote_v that_o passage_n of_o st._n john_n ep._n 1._o ch_n 2._o they_o go_v out_o from_o we_o but_o they_o be_v not_o of_o we_o tell_v we_o that_o though_o the_o do_v such_o miracle_n be_v a_o high_a and_o admirable_a thing_n yet_o if_o they_o take_v not_o heed_n to_o go_v in_o the_o just_a and_o right_a way_n it_o give_v they_o no_o title_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n where_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o the_o recti_fw-la &_o justi_fw-la itineris_fw-la observatio_fw-la be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v mere_o a_o good_a and_o virtuous_a life_n for_o that_o be_v acknowledge_v on_o all_o hand_n that_o some_o person_n inward_o wicked_a but_o outward_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o true_a church_n may_v work_v miracle_n as_o probable_o judas_n do_v among_o the_o other_o disciple_n but_o st._n cyprian_n mean_v it_o of_o those_o that_o have_v turn_v out_o of_o the_o right_a way_n and_o through_o schism_n have_v break_v off_o from_o the_o true_a church_n as_o the_o tenor_n of_o that_o discourse_n carry_v it_o 9_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d irenae_n advers._fw-la haeres_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 9_o irenaeus_n tell_v we_o of_o the_o prodigious_a error_n of_o marcus_n the_o heretic_n and_o yet_o two_o of_o the_o wonder_n he_o do_v viz._n when_o he_o be_v consecrate_v or_o give_v of_o thanks_o over_o the_o cup_n mix_v with_o wine_n draw_v out_o his_o invocation_n to_o a_o mighty_a length_n he_o make_v the_o cup_n appear_v of_o a_o purple_a or_o red_a colour_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v seem_v that_o that_o grace_n that_o come_v from_o the_o place_n which_o be_v above_o all_o thing_n do_v by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o invocation_n distil_v its_o own_o blood_n into_o the_o cup_n that_o those_o that_o be_v present_a shall_v vehement_o desire_v to_o taste_v of_o the_o same_o draught_n that_o so_o that_o very_a grace_n boast_v of_o by_o the_o magician_n may_v actual_o flow_v into_o they_o too_o he_o further_a instance_n in_o a_o magic_a trick_n he_o have_v of_o fill_v a_o great_a cup_n with_o a_o much_o less_o and_o to_o the_o view_n of_o other_o inspire_v some_o of_o the_o seduce_v woman_n with_o the_o gift_n of_o prophesy_v and_o the_o like_a this_o passage_n of_o irenaeus_n be_v quote_v verbatim_o by_o epiphanius_n who_o also_o call_v this_o marcus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d one_o perfect_o skill_a in_o the_o magic_n art._n marcosii_n art._n epiphan_n in_o haeres_fw-la 34._o marcosii_n finem_fw-la marcosii_n august_n exposit_n in_o evang_v johann_n tractat._n 13._o versus_fw-la finem_fw-la st._n austin_n direct_v thus_o let_v no_o man_n say_v he_o vend_fw-mi fable_n among_o you_o both_o pontius_n wrought_v a_o miracle_n and_o donatus_n pray_v and_o god_n answer_v he_o from_o heaven_n first_o either_o they_o be_v deceive_v themselves_o or_o else_o they_o deceive_v other_o however_o suppose_v he_o can_v remove_v mountain_n yet_o say_v the_o apostle_n if_o i_o have_v not_o charity_n i_o be_o nothing_o let_v we_o see_v whether_o he_o have_v not_o charity_n i_o shall_v have_v believe_v it_o if_o he_o have_v not_o divide_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n for_o god_n have_v warn_v i_o against_o such_o wonder-monger_n if_o i_o may_v so_o call_v they_o mirabiliarios_fw-la they_o istos_fw-la mirabiliarios_fw-la in_o the_o latter_a day_n there_o shall_v arise_v false_a prophet_n do_v sign_n and_o wonder_n etc._n etc._n mark_v xiii_o ergo_fw-la cautos_fw-la nos_fw-la fecit_fw-la sponsus_fw-la quia_fw-la miraculis_fw-la decipi_fw-la non_fw-la debemus_fw-la therefore_o have_v our_o lord_n warn_v we_o because_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v deceive_v by_o miracle_n and_o so_o he_o go_v on_o with_o that_o which_o we_o find_v in_o decret_a part_n 2._o caus_n 1._o quaest_n 1._o cap._n 56._o teneamus_fw-la ergo_fw-la unitatem_fw-la fratres_fw-la mei_fw-la praeter_fw-la vnitatem_fw-la &_o qui_fw-la facit_fw-la miracula_fw-la nihil_fw-la est_fw-la let_v we_o hold_v fast_o the_o unity_n out_o of_o this_o unity_n even_o he_o that_o work_v miracle_n be_v nothing_o peter_n the_o apostle_n say_v he_o raise_v the_o dead_a simon_n magus_n do_v many_o thing_n there_o be_v many_o christian_n that_o can_v do_v none_o of_o these_o thing_n neither_o what_o peter_n nor_o what_o simon_n do_v but_o what_o do_v they_o rejoice_v in_o that_o their_o name_n be_v waitten_v in_o heaven_n this_o father_n have_v many_o other_o passage_n of_o this_o kind_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la but_o they_o be_v already_o so_o large_o quote_v in_o that_o excellent_a preface_n before_o the_o school_n of_o the_o eucharist_n late_o make_v english_a that_o i_o refer_v the_o reader_n thither_o not_o only_o for_o that_o but_o also_o for_o the_o whole_a argument_n about_o miracle_n which_o may_v just_o have_v supersede_v this_o discourse_n upon_o the_o note_n of_o miracle_n have_v it_o be_v so_o order_v in_o its_o due_a place_n so_o that_o miracle_n mere_o we_o see_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n be_v never_o account_v a_o full_a and_o adequate_a note_n of_o any_o true_a church_n which_o in_o truth_n the_o cardinal_n himself_o after_o the_o great_a foundation_n he_o seem_v to_o have_v lay_v as_o to_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o miracle_n do_v in_o some_o measure_n yield_v when_o he_o tell_v we_o in_o this_o very_a same_o chapter_n 14._o exit_fw-la miraculis_fw-la demonstratur_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la non_fw-la quoad_fw-la evidentiam_fw-la vel_fw-la certitudinem_fw-la rei_fw-la sed_fw-la quoad_fw-la evidentiam_fw-la &_o certitudinem_fw-la credibilitatis_fw-la bel._n l._n four_o c._n 14._o that_o the_o church_n be_v demonstrate_v by_o miracle_n not_o as_o to_o the_o evidence_n and_o certainty_n of_o the_o thing_n but_o only_o as_o to_o the_o evidence_n and_o certainty_n of_o credibility_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v that_o miracle_n may_v be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n and_o they_o may_v not_o be_v so_o that_o be_v such_o a_o kind_n of_o note_n by_o which_o we_o may_v give_v a_o good_a guess_n at_o the_o true_a church_n but_o can_v be_v certain_a for_o as_o one_o of_o their_o own_o writer_n express_v it_o miracula_fw-la deo_fw-la &_o diabolo_fw-it christo_fw-la &_o antichristo_fw-la sunt_fw-la communia_fw-la tim._n communia_fw-la espencaeus_fw-la in_o 2_o ad_fw-la tim._n miracle_n be_v common_a to_o god_n and_o the_o devil_n to_o christ_n and_o antichrist_n ii_o if_o miracle_n in_o general_a be_v no_o sufficient_a note_n or_o proof_n of_o any_o church_n whatever_o much_o less_o be_v those_o miracle_n allege_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o confirmation_n of_o those_o particular_a doctrine_n and_o practice_n wherein_o we_o of_o the_o reform_a church_n differ_v from_o they_o much_o less_o i_o say_v be_v they_o any_o just_a note_n of_o their_o church_n or_o evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o those_o doctrine_n there_o be_v a_o variety_n of_o miracle_n offer_v to_o we_o in_o their_o history_n or_o in_o their_o legend_n in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o several_a doctrine_n of_o sacramental_a confession_n adoration_n of_o image_n and_o relic_n invocation_n of_o saint_n purgatory_n the_o bodily_a presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o the_o holiness_n of_o particular_a person_n that_o have_v flourish_v in_o their_o church_n now_o as_o to_o this_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v these_o thing_n first_o that_o we_o do_v not_o observe_v any_o ground_n throughout_o the_o whole_a scripture_n either_o of_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n to_o expect_v any_o miracle_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o any_o particular_a doctrine_n whatever_o second_o that_o many_o of_o those_o doctrine_n which_o these_o miracle_n be_v allege_v in_o confirmation_n of_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v express_o assert_v or_o warrant_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o they_o rather_o bear_v a_o direct_a contrariety_n three_o that_o there_o be_v no_o tolerable_a ground_n for_o certainty_n as_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o most_o of_o those_o miracle_n which_o the_o romanist_n do_v make_v the_o glory_n of_o their_o church_n first_o that_o we_o do_v not_o observe_v any_o ground_n throughout_o the_o whole_a scripture_n either_o of_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n to_o expect_v any_o miracle_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o any_o particular_a doctrine_n whatever_o the_o miracle_n under_o the_o mosaic_a dispensation_n be_v to_o confirm_v and_o establish_v that_o and_o the_o miracle_n perform_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n as_o i_o have_v already_o intimate_v be_v to_o bring_v in_o and_o establish_v
cardinal_n clear_o distinguish_v between_o these_o two_o notion_n his_o reader_n may_v easy_o have_v see_v how_o far_o the_o light_n of_o prophecy_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o mark_n by_o which_o to_o know_v the_o true_a church_n viz._n so_o far_o as_o to_o do_v he_o and_o his_o cause_n no_o manner_n of_o service_n for_o in_o the_o latter_a sense_n it_o may_v be_v admit_v to_o be_v such_o a_o mark_n inasmuch_o as_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o those_o prophecy_n which_o concern_v christ_n show_v that_o jesus_n be_v he_o and_o that_o his_o doctrine_n be_v of_o god._n but_o then_o this_o light_n of_o prophecy_n come_v no_o other_o way_n to_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n than_o as_o it_o be_v a_o argument_n or_o if_o you_o will_v call_v it_o so_o a_o mark_n of_o that_o doctrine_n the_o profession_n whereof_o make_v the_o church_n so_o that_o when_o we_o have_v make_v the_o best_a we_o can_v of_o this_o note_n the_o church_n be_v still_o to_o be_v know_v by_o the_o religion_n it_o profess_v though_o that_o religion_n be_v know_v to_o be_v divine_a as_o by_o other_o argument_n and_o testimony_n so_o also_o by_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o prophecy_n and_o yet_o even_o here_o we_o must_v be_v something_o cautious_a in_o lay_v down_o the_o fulfil_n of_o prediction_n as_o a_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n for_o there_o be_v some_o prophecy_n both_o in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n that_o in_o part_n have_v be_v and_o will_v in_o time_n be_v full_o accomplish_v by_o such_o person_n who_o doctrine_n we_o be_v by_o no_o mean_n to_o follow_v for_o antichrist_n be_v foretell_v as_o well_o as_o christ_n and_o when_o he_o come_v and_o fulfil_v all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v concern_v he_o so_o long_o before_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o those_o prediction_n be_v a_o mark_n upon_o he_o not_o that_o we_o shall_v receive_v but_o that_o we_o shall_v reject_v he_o and_o his_o doctrine_n so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o bare_o the_o fulfil_n of_o prophecy_n but_o of_o such_o prophecy_n only_o as_o describe_v the_o character_n of_o that_o person_n who_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o hearken_v to_o and_o to_o obey_v in_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o true_a doctrine_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n we_o be_v not_o unwilling_a to_o admit_v the_o light_n of_o prophecy_n to_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n though_o it_o be_v a_o very_a improper_a way_n of_o speak_v since_o the_o doctrine_n itself_o which_o be_v demonstrate_v to_o be_v a_o divine_a doctrine_n come_v to_o be_v the_o proper_a note_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o light_n of_o prophecy_n be_v leave_v to_o be_v one_o of_o those_o argument_n by_o which_o the_o doctrine_n be_v demonstrate_v to_o be_v divine_a but_o this_o way_n of_o mark_v for_o the_o church_n be_v very_o uncomfortable_a to_o the_o cardinal_n friend_n because_o it_o will_v force_v they_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o church_n that_o make_v the_o religion_n but_o the_o religion_n that_o make_v the_o church_n he_o therefore_o find_v no_o advantage_n to_o his_o cause_n by_o this_o notion_n of_o prophetic_a light_n whole_o insist_o upon_o the_o former_a and_o make_v the_o gift_n of_o foretell_v thing_n to_o come_v to_o be_v one_o note_v of_o the_o church_n and_o doubt_v not_o but_o to_o show_v it_o in_o his_o own_o and_o will_v not_o allow_v it_o to_o be_v in_o any_o other_o so_o that_o these_o two_o thing_n must_v come_v under_o examination_n i._o whether_o it_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n ii_o if_o it_o be_v whether_o he_o have_v sufficient_o prove_v that_o they_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v it_o and_o no_o other_o i._o whether_o it_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n the_o cardinal_n offer_v to_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v by_o three_o argument_n huddle_v up_o together_o which_o be_v distinguish_v be_v these_o 1._o that_o as_o christ_n promise_v the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n so_o he_o also_o promise_v the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n to_o the_o church_n 2._o that_o none_o know_v future_a contingency_n but_o god_n only_o 3._o that_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a note_n of_o false_a doctrine_n if_o a_o prophet_n foretell_v any_o thing_n and_o it_o do_v not_o come_v to_o pass_v let_v we_o now_o see_v what_o all_o this_o will_v amount_v to_o 1._o christ_n promise_v the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n to_o the_o church_n no_o less_o than_o the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n to_o which_o it_o may_v be_v sufficient_a to_o say_v that_o as_o miracle_n notwithstanding_o such_o a_o promise_n be_v no_o note_n of_o the_o church_n so_o neither_o be_v prophecy_n such_o a_o note_n mere_o because_o it_o be_v also_o promise_v and_o there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n for_o the_o one_o as_o there_o be_v for_o the_o other_o for_o neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o be_v promise_v to_o last_v always_o in_o the_o church_n and_o we_o have_v be_v tell_v sufficient_o that_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o bellarmin_n himself_o must_v be_v character_n that_o be_v inseparable_a from_o it_o now_o the_o place_n by_o he_o produce_v be_v so_o far_o from_o prove_v that_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n shall_v flourish_v in_o every_o age_n that_o there_o be_v pregnant_a intimation_n in_o it_o of_o the_o contrary_n he_o refer_v we_o to_o the_o prediction_n of_o joel_n apply_v by_o st._n peter_n to_o the_o church_n 16._o joel_n two_o 18._o act_n two_o 16._o and_o because_o he_o refer_v we_o to_o it_o thither_o we_o will_v go_v and_o not_o as_o he_o do_v take_v thing_n for_o grant_v which_o ought_v to_o be_v discourse_v but_o bring_v forth_o the_o text_n and_o see_v what_o argument_n it_o will_v afford_v the_o apostle_n as_o the_o chapter_n show_v speak_v with_o tongue_n to_o the_o amazement_n of_o all_o the_o stranger_n that_o hear_v they_o but_o the_o unbelieve_a jew_n mock_v and_o say_v they_o be_v drink_v upon_o which_o peter_n light_o pass_v by_o that_o absurd_a reproach_n tell_v they_o that_o this_o be_v that_o which_o be_v speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n joel_n and_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o last_o day_n say_v god_n i_o will_v pour_v out_o of_o my_o spirit_n upon_o all_o flesh_n and_o your_o son_n and_o your_o daughter_n shall_v prophesy_v and_o your_o young_a man_n shall_v see_v vision_n and_o your_o old_a man_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o i_o will_v pour_v out_o in_o those_o day_n of_o my_o spirit_n and_o they_o shall_v prophesy_v now_o though_o prophecy_n in_o the_o strict_a sense_n signify_v foretell_v thing_n to_o come_v yet_o it_o be_v here_o put_v for_o supernatural_a gift_n in_o general_n and_o particular_o for_o speak_v divine_a thing_n by_o inspiration_n and_o likewise_o for_o speak_v with_o new_a tongue_n which_o be_v undeniable_o evident_a from_o hence_o that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o wonderful_a thing_n of_o god_n in_o tongue_n they_o have_v never_o learn_v be_v by_o st._n peter_n affirm_v to_o be_v foretell_v in_o this_o prediction_n of_o joel_n so_o that_o the_o cardinal_n ought_v to_o have_v be_v very_o much_o afraid_a to_o make_v what_o be_v promise_v in_o joel_n a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n for_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o have_v make_v it_o unavoidable_o necessary_a for_o those_o of_o his_o communion_n the_o young_a man_n and_o the_o old_a man_n etc._n etc._n to_o speak_v with_o tongue_n by_o inspiration_n which_o be_v in_o effect_n to_o unchurch_n his_o own_o party_n and_o therefore_o i_o imagine_v his_o follower_n will_v not_o follow_v he_o in_o this_o nor_o advance_v the_o promise_n in_o joel_n into_o a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n but_o will_v rather_o say_v that_o the_o fulfil_n of_o it_o in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o testimony_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n and_o that_o the_o prediction_n of_o joel_n be_v accomplish_v though_o the_o same_o extraordinary_a gift_n be_v not_o continue_v in_o every_o age_n afterward_o 2._o he_o say_v that_o none_o know_v future_a contingency_n but_o god_n only_o which_o if_o it_o shall_v prove_v that_o a_o church_n be_v there_o where_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n be_v yet_o it_o do_v not_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v no_o church_n where_o that_o gift_n be_v not_o unless_o it_o be_v a_o inseparable_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n to_o have_v all_o those_o future_a event_n make_v know_v to_o one_o or_o other_o in_o it_o which_o god_n only_o know_v our_o saviour_n say_v of_o that_o day_n and_o hour_n when_o himself_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o world_n no_o man_n know_v but_o the_o father_n only_o do_v it_o therefore_o follow_v that_o god_n must_v have_v reveal_v it_o to_o one_o or_o other_o in_o the_o church_n if_o because_o god_n only_o know_v future_a contingency_n
obadiah_n hide_v a_o hundred_o of_o they_o there_o be_v some_o false_a prophet_n among_o the_o jew_n be_v all_o the_o jewish_a prophet_n therefore_o deceive_v when_o they_o pretend_v to_o foretell_v any_o thing_n we_o find_v that_o god_n charge_v the_o prophet_n of_o jerusalem_n no_o less_o than_o those_o of_o samaria_n with_o imposture_n with_o run_v before_o they_o be_v send_v etc._n jerem._n xxiii_o 14_o 21_o 25_o etc._n etc._n and_o prophesy_v when_o god_n have_v not_o speak_v to_o they_o and_o with_o prophesy_a lie_n in_o his_o name_n and_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o to_o this_o purpose_n therefore_o by_o the_o cardinal_n logic_n it_o appear_v by_o the_o false_a prophet_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n that_o catholic_n be_v deceive_v as_o often_o as_o they_o will_v foretell_v any_o thing_n to_o conclude_v this_o matter_n since_o the_o cardinal_n seem_v to_o take_v a_o particular_a delight_n in_o prove_v his_o note_n of_o the_o church_n out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n i_o shall_v leave_v this_o one_o argument_n out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n against_o his_o present_a note_n of_o prophetic_a light._n to_o make_v it_o a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o there_o shall_v have_v be_v no_o true_a prophecy_n but_o in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v notorious_o false_a because_o balaam_n who_o be_v but_o a_o heathen_a divine_a prophesy_v true_o of_o christ_n it_o be_v necessary_a also_o that_o this_o gift_n shall_v always_o have_v continue_v in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v alike_o false_a because_o there_o be_v no_o prophet_n among_o the_o jew_n between_o malachi_n and_o zachary_n the_o father_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n that_o be_v for_o about_o 400_o year_n together_o and_o thus_o much_o concern_v the_o first_o inquiry_n whether_o prophetic_a light_n be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n i_o come_v now_o to_o the_o second_o ii_o if_o it_o be_v such_o a_o note_n whether_o the_o cardinal_n have_v sufficient_o prove_v that_o they_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v it_o and_o not_o other_o he_o pretend_v to_o prove_v that_o there_o have_v be_v prophet_n in_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o no_o body_n deny_v but_o you_o must_v know_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v a_o term_n of_o art_n which_o these_o master_n to_o the_o abuse_n of_o name_n and_o word_n as_o well_o as_o of_o thing_n and_o person_n be_v resolve_v shall_v signify_v the_o roman_a church_n well_o let_v the_o roman_a church_n be_v their_o catholic_n church_n with_o we_o it_o be_v but_o the_o roman_a and_o now_o that_o we_o understand_v one_o another_o how_o do_v he_o prove_v that_o there_o have_v be_v prophet_n among_o they_o why_o he_o produce_v the_o prophet_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o those_o that_o prophesy_v for_o 500_o year_n after_o christ_n agabus_n for_o instance_n who_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o act_n chap._n 11_o etc._n etc._n now_o by_o this_o i_o perceive_v that_o it_o be_v wary_o do_v of_o the_o cardinal_n and_o not_o in_o course_n to_o call_v his_o church_n the_o catholic_n church_n for_o if_o he_o have_v produce_v the_o prophet_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o agabus_n with_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o new_a to_o prove_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v have_v prophet_n it_o have_v look_v so_o simple_o that_o the_o cardinal_n himself_o can_v not_o have_v bear_v it_o but_o this_o be_v one_o of_o their_o old_a fetch_n that_o when_o they_o will_v get_v any_o credit_n by_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o apostle_n they_o call_v themselves_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o then_o because_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n belong_v to_o the_o catholic_n church_n they_o must_v belong_v to_o they_o and_o to_o no_o christian_n of_o any_o communion_n but_o they_o but_o how_o i_o pray_v come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o we_o have_v less_o interest_n in_o the_o prophet_n the_o apostle_n and_o the_o primitive_a christian_n than_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v nay_o that_o we_o have_v none_o and_o they_o have_v all_o one_o thing_n i_o be_o sure_a of_o that_o if_o our_o doctrine_n and_o they_o be_v several_o compare_v with_o the_o write_n of_o those_o renown_a ancient_n it_o will_v not_o be_v hard_a to_o say_v who_o be_v their_o child_n they_o or_o we_o and_o that_o they_o be_v our_o predecessor_n and_o parent_n and_o not_o they_o in_o all_o those_o point_n wherein_o we_o differ_v from_o they_o and_o therefore_o since_o it_o be_v in_o behalf_n of_o those_o particular_n wherein_o we_o have_v leave_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o the_o prophetic_a light_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n be_v produce_v as_o a_o argument_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v have_v prophet_n we_o have_v some_o reason_n to_o think_v that_o the_o cardinal_n by_o produce_v the_o prophet_n of_o both_o testament_n in_o this_o cause_n have_v give_v we_o a_o terrible_a weapon_n against_o himself_o and_o by_o their_o prophetic_a light_n discover_v that_o if_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o we_o can_v be_v part_n of_o the_o same_o church_n than_o we_o who_o have_v the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n with_o we_o in_o the_o doctrine_n we_o maintain_v be_v a_o true_a church_n exclusive_o to_o they_o and_o not_o they_o to_o we_o in_o the_o next_o place_n we_o be_v tell_v of_o gregory_n thaumaturgus_n and_o anthony_n and_o john_n the_o anchoret_n who_o prediction_n be_v relate_v by_o st._n basil_n athanasius_n and_o austin_n now_o gregory_n be_v bishop_n of_o caesarea_n anthony_n a_o egyptian_a monk_n and_o john_n a_o anchoret_n in_o a_o certain_a wilderness_n of_o egypt_n but_o how_o all_o this_o prove_v that_o there_o have_v be_v prophet_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v never_o to_o be_v make_v out_o otherwise_o than_o by_o suppose_v the_o greek_a and_o the_o egyptian_a church_n to_o signify_v the_o roman_a church_n by_o the_o same_o figure_n that_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o that_o of_o rome_n be_v all_o one_o the_o express_a testimony_n he_o bring_v be_v concern_v st._n benedict_n st._n bernard_n and_o st._n francis._n st._n benedict_n tell_v totila_n that_o he_o shall_v reign_v nine_o year_n and_o die_v the_o ten_o which_o as_o gregory_n say_v happen_v according_o st._n bernard_n foretell_v the_o conversion_n of_o four_o unlikely_a person_n and_o which_o be_v very_o admirable_a as_o bellarmin_n affirm_v when_o he_o be_v desire_v to_o pray_v for_o the_o conversion_n of_o a_o certain_a nobleman_n fear_v not_o say_v he_o i_o shall_v bury_v he_o a_o perfect_a monk_n in_o this_o very_a place_n of_o claravall_n upon_o which_o the_o cardinal_n cry_v out_o how_o many_o prophecy_n be_v there_o in_o this_o one_o sentence_n for_o that_o he_o shall_v one_o day_n be_v a_o monk_n and_o persevere_v therein_o to_o the_o death_n and_o end_v his_o day_n in_o a_o holy_a sort_n and_o that_o before_o st._n bernard_n be_v death_n and_o this_o in_o claravall_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v bury_v by_o st._n bernard_n be_v own_o hand_n be_v six_o distinct_a prophecy_n and_o all_o of_o they_o not_o without_o god_n singular_a providence_n fulfil_v as_o for_o st._n francis_n he_o admonish_v the_o general_n of_o the_o christian_a army_n not_o to_o fight_v upon_o such_o a_o day_n with_o the_o saracen_n for_o god_n have_v reveal_v to_o he_o that_o upon_o that_o day_n they_o will_v be_v beat_v but_o they_o contemn_v the_o admonition_n of_o bless_a francis_n fight_v and_o be_v overthrow_v with_o a_o miserable_a slaughter_n and_o many_o more_o thing_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n the_o cardinal_n assure_v we_o may_v be_v add_v and_o if_o he_o have_v none_o of_o a_o better_a kind_n than_o these_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v produce_v his_o many_o more_o and_o at_o least_o give_v we_o number_n for_o weight_n now_o though_o i_o can_v very_o willing_o give_v he_o all_o his_o three_o story_n yet_o i_o be_o loath_a to_o be_v think_v so_o silly_a as_o to_o take_v every_o thing_n of_o this_o kind_n for_o gospel_n which_o we_o be_v tell_v by_o bonaventure_n that_o write_v the_o life_n of_o st._n francis_n or_o by_o gofrid_n that_o write_v that_o part_n of_o st._n bernard_n life_n where_o the_o cardinal_n find_v he_o a_o prophet_n no_o nor_o by_o gregory_n himself_o in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o his_o dialogue_n concern_v the_o life_n and_o miracle_n of_o benedict_n the_o abbot_n the_o story_n of_o the_o blackbird_n that_o go_v off_o with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n 2.4_o dial._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 2.4_o and_o that_o other_o of_o the_o little_a black-boy_n invisible_a to_o all_o till_o benedict_n see_v he_o that_o draw_v away_o the_o idle_a monk_n from_o his_o prayer_n with_o many_o more_o such_o rank_a fable_n as_o these_o be_v do_v plain_o show_v that_o pope_n gregory_n have_v credulity_n enough_o to_o have_v live_v in_o the_o age_n of_o gofrid_n or_o in_o that_o which_o next_o
be_v make_v jesus_n christ_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n never_o make_v it_o one_o so_o far_o be_v he_o from_o make_v this_o a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n that_o he_o rather_o make_v it_o a_o sign_n of_o the_o contrary_n 6.26_o luk._n 6.26_o wo_n unto_o you_o say_v he_o when_o all_o man_n shall_v speak_v well_o of_o you_o for_o so_o do_v their_o father_n to_o the_o false_a prophet_n 5.11_o mat._n 5.11_o our_o lord_n call_v they_o bless_v and_o certain_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o they_o that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n that_o be_v revile_v and_o have_v all_o manner_n of_o evil_n say_v against_o they_o 23._o luk._n 6.22_o 23._o he_o pronounce_v they_o bless_v who_o be_v reproach_v and_o who_o name_n be_v cast_v out_o as_o evil_a he_o bid_v they_o rejoice_v in_o that_o day_n and_o be_v exceed_o glad_a st._n peter_n reckon_v the_o reproach_n for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n a_o glory_n and_o happiness_n 4.14_o 1_o pet._n 4.14_o and_o simeon_n foretell_v of_o jesus_n that_o he_o be_v set_v for_o a_o sign_n which_o shall_v be_v speak_v against_o 2.34_o luk._n 2.34_o and_o we_o preach_v christ_n crucify_v 1.23_o 1_o cor._n 1.23_o unto_o the_o jew_n a_o stumbling-block_n and_o unto_o the_o greek_n foolishness_n say_v the_o great_a apostle_n of_o the_o gentile_n so_o far_o be_v this_o confession_n of_o adversary_n from_o be_v a_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n as_o the_o cardinal_n will_v make_v it_o that_o the_o reproach_n and_o scoff_v of_o enemy_n be_v no_o reflection_n upon_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n the_o worst_a of_o man_n do_v not_o use_v to_o treat_v the_o best_a thing_n well_o and_o when_o these_o bad_a man_n be_v enemy_n they_o do_v no_o prejudice_n with_o wise_a man_n by_o their_o invective_n and_o reproach_n apol._n qui_fw-la enim_fw-la scit_fw-la illum_fw-la intelligere_fw-la potest_fw-la non_fw-la nisi_fw-la aliquid_fw-la bonum_fw-la grande_fw-fr à_fw-fr nerone_n damnatum_fw-la tertull._n apol._n tertullian_n conclude_v the_o christian_a religion_n good_a because_o nero_n one_o of_o the_o worst_a of_o man_n bend_v his_o force_n against_o it_o the_o church_n will_v want_v nothing_o that_o be_v require_v though_o jew_n and_o pagan_n shall_v with_o one_o consent_n perpetual_o declaim_v against_o she_o in_o a_o word_n this_o confession_n of_o adversary_n of_o what_o use_n soever_o it_o may_v be_v can_v be_v no_o note_n for_o it_o be_v contingent_a and_o arbitrary_a and_o lie_v at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o those_o who_o be_v not_o only_o out_o of_o the_o church_n but_o enemy_n to_o it_o and_o in_o the_o infancy_n of_o christianity_n the_o church_n be_v without_o this_o note_n and_o if_o that_o be_v allow_v to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n this_o can_v be_v no_o true_a note_n of_o it_o ii_o but_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v grant_v that_o this_o be_v a_o true_a note_n the_o next_o enquiry_n will_v be_v whether_o or_o not_o the_o particular_n produce_v by_o the_o cardinal_n do_v evince_v that_o this_o note_n be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o roman_a church_n exclusive_o to_o other_o christian_n that_o be_v not_o of_o her_o communion_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o by_o the_o true_a church_n the_o note_n whereof_o the_o cardinal_n attempt_v to_o give_v we_o he_o mean_v only_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n xi_o v._o c._n vi_o &_o c._n ix_o &_o c._n xi_o and_o what_o in_o the_o beginning_n of_o his_o book_n he_o call_v the_o true_a church_n he_o call_v afterward_o our_o church_n and_o make_v they_o both_o one_o and_o the_o same_o at_o last_o it_o come_v to_o our_o catholic_n church_n with_o he_o so_o that_o this_o note_n of_o he_o which_o he_o call_v the_o confession_n of_o enemy_n must_v belong_v peculiarly_a to_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o else_o it_o will_v do_v he_o no_o service_n for_o this_o be_v a_o rule_n which_o the_o cardinal_n have_v lay_v down_o ii_o c._n ii_o that_o note_n must_v be_v proper_a and_o not_o common_a for_o say_v he_o if_o i_o will_v describe_v a_o certain_a man_n to_o one_o who_o know_v he_o not_o i_o must_v not_o say_v he_o be_v one_o that_o have_v two_o eye_n and_o hand_n etc._n etc._n because_o these_o be_v common_a thing_n and_o he_o will_v never_o find_v he_o by_o such_o common_a description_n as_o these_o according_a to_o this_o account_n we_o may_v just_o expect_v that_o when_o the_o cardinal_n produce_v the_o confession_n of_o adversary_n in_o behalf_n of_o the_o church_n he_o shall_v produce_v witness_n who_o speak_v of_o that_o very_a church_n of_o which_o he_o make_v this_o confession_n a_o note_n else_o these_o witness_n prove_v nothing_o to_o his_o purpose_n if_o they_o shall_v chance_v only_o to_o speak_v some_o favourable_a word_n of_o christianity_n or_o of_o some_o few_o christian_n this_o will_v be_v short_a of_o what_o they_o be_v produce_v for_o in_o this_o place_n and_o what_o ever_o good_a use_n may_v be_v make_v of_o their_o confession_n yet_o it_o will_v not_o belong_v peculiar_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o must_v speak_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o her_o behalf_n or_o else_o the_o cardinal_n have_v better_o have_v spare_v they_o they_o will_v do_v he_o no_o service_n if_o they_o do_v not_o make_v good_a his_o note_n and_o that_o can_v be_v do_v if_o they_o witness_v not_o in_o behalf_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n it_o be_v time_n now_o to_o call_v the_o witness_n and_o hear_v what_o they_o have_v to_o say_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o here_o not_o to_o invert_v that_o order_n which_o the_o cardinal_n have_v take_v we_o will_v begin_v with_o the_o pagan_n and_o see_v what_o they_o have_v to_o say_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o cardinal_n begin_v with_o pliny_n the_o second_o he_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o emperor_n trajan_n give_v this_o testimony_n in_o behalf_n of_o christian_n viz._n that_o they_o detest_v all_o vice_n live_v most_o holy_o and_o be_v blamable_a on_o this_o account_n only_o that_o they_o be_v too_o forward_o to_o part_v with_o their_o life_n for_o their_o god_n and_o they_o rise_v up_o before_o day_n to_o sing_v praise_n to_o christ_n but_o what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n especial_o as_o it_o be_v now_o constitute_v and_o distinguish_v from_o other_o christian_n which_o be_v not_o of_o her_o communion_n and_o do_v not_o own_v themselves_o subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o church_n he_o speak_v well_o of_o christian_n and_o we_o allow_v that_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o that_o time_n be_v such_o we_o have_v no_o quarrel_n with_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o live_v in_o the_o day_n of_o trajan_n pliny_n speak_v well_o of_o they_o he_o do_v so_o indeed_o but_o what_o do_v he_o say_v do_v he_o say_v that_o they_o worship_v image_n or_o that_o they_o adore_v the_o host_n that_o they_o pray_v to_o saint_n and_o make_v use_v of_o several_a intercessor_n that_o they_o deserve_v favour_n because_o they_o come_v so_o near_o the_o pagan_n in_o these_o thing_n he_o say_v no_o such_o thing_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o they_o live_v well_o and_o detest_a vice_n that_o they_o sing_v praise_n to_o jesus_n and_o be_v willing_a to_o die_v for_o god._n do_v we_o ever_o find_v fault_n with_o any_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o their_o good_a life_n or_o the_o hymn_n of_o praise_n which_o they_o sing_v to_o christ_n have_v we_o ever_o quarrel_v with_o they_o for_o detest_a vice_n or_o expose_v their_o life_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o true_a god_n he_o commend_v the_o christian_n that_o live_v then_o but_o not_o for_o any_o thing_n which_o they_o either_o believe_v or_o practise_v which_o be_v now_o a_o matter_n of_o controversy_n between_o we_o and_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n pliny_n commend_v the_o ancient_a christian_n be_v it_o so_o why_o must_v this_o be_v restrain_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v there_o no_o christian_n but_o what_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o and_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o roman_a church_n he_o commend_v the_o christian_n of_o that_o time_n but_o will_v this_o justify_v they_o who_o afterward_o shall_v call_v themselves_o by_o that_o name_n he_o commend_v they_o for_o their_o good_a life_n their_o love_n to_o god_n and_o gratitude_n to_o their_o saviour_n will_v this_o justify_v the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n will_v it_o serve_v to_o defend_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n or_o prayer_n to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o invocation_n of_o saint_n do_v it_o appear_v that_o there_o be_v no_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n but_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o that_o church_n be_v then_o what_o it_o be_v now_o what_o the_o cardinal_n produce_v afterward_o have_v no_o great_a force_n than_o
prosperous_a life_n have_v a_o honourable_a death_n and_o burial_n for_o i_o see_v say_v solomon_n the_o wicked_a bury_v 8.10_o bury_v eccles_n 8.10_o that_o be_v as_o cardinal_n cajetan_n expound_v the_o word_n in_o such_o a_o pompous_a sepulchre_n as_o transmits_n a_o honourable_a memory_n of_o they_o to_o posterity_n i_o grant_v that_o the_o note_n of_o divine_a vengeance_n be_v in_o some_o man_n death_n fair_o legible_a but_o then_o as_o i_o have_v before_o observe_v from_o god_n judgement_n against_o this_o or_o that_o person_n nothing_o can_v be_v conclude_v against_o that_o church_n of_o which_o they_o be_v member_n 2._o beside_o these_o general_a declaration_n the_o scripture_n further_o assure_v we_o by_o a_o particular_a instance_n that_o a_o true_a church_n may_v be_v without_o this_o mark_n and_o that_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o true_a church_n may_v have_v it_o thus_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n be_v without_o it_o and_o the_o uncircumcised_a philistine_n have_v it_o when_o the_o high_a priest_n fall_v backward_o and_o break_v his_o neck_n and_o his_o two_o son_n hophni_n and_o phineas_n with_o thirty_o thousand_o of_o the_o israelite_n fall_v in_o one_o day_n by_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o philistine_n 3._o philistine_n 1_o sam._n 3._o again_o when_o zedekiah_n the_o defender_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v take_v his_o noble_n slaughter_v his_o son_n slay_v before_o his_o eye_n his_o eye_n then_o put_v out_o and_o he_o carry_v captive_a to_o babylon_n and_o put_v in_o prison_n till_o the_o day_n of_o his_o death_n if_o this_o be_v then_o a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n the_o babylonian_n be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n of_o god_n for_o their_o enemy_n have_v then_o the_o most_o unhappy_a end_n so_o contrary_a be_v this_o note_n to_o what_o we_o find_v in_o scripture_n second_o nor_o be_v it_o less_o repugnant_a to_o daily_a observation_n and_o the_o history_n of_o forego_v age_n for_o 1._o all_o the_o world_n can_v testify_v that_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o death_n happen_v to_o man_n of_o different_a yea_o of_o opposite_a church_n that_o as_o die_v the_o christian_n so_o die_v the_o jew_n as_o dies_z the_o catholic_n so_o die_v the_o heretic_n that_o the_o protestant_n and_o papist_n lie_n down_o alike_o in_o the_o dust_n to_o use_v job_n phrase_n 21.26_o phrase_n job_n 21.26_o that_o as_o they_o often_o agree_v in_o their_o death_n who_o while_o they_o live_v be_v of_o different_a church_n so_o they_o often_o wide_o differ_v who_o be_v unite_v in_o the_o same_o one_o have_v a_o natural_a another_o a_o violent_a death_n one_o fall_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n another_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o neighbour_n one_o go_v off_o gentle_o in_o a_o calm_a another_o be_v hurry_v away_o in_o a_o storm_n one_o life_n out_o the_o term_n of_o nature_n another_o be_v cut_v off_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o day_n one_o die_v leisurely_o another_o be_v snatch_v away_o sudden_o one_o find_v a_o grave_a in_o the_o earth_n another_o in_o the_o sea_n another_o find_v none_o at_o all_o but_o be_v expose_v as_o a_o prey_n to_o beast_n and_o bird_n this_o be_v so_o obvious_a that_o it_o be_v needless_a to_o produce_v instance_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o it_o 2._o whosoever_o have_v any_o acquaintance_n with_o the_o history_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n know_v that_o for_o several_a of_o the_o first_o age_n at_o least_o the_o best_a man_n have_v general_o the_o worst_a death_n that_o the_o apostle_n of_o our_o bless_a lord_n be_v set_v forth_o as_o a_o spectacle_n to_o the_o world_n suffer_v the_o death_n of_o the_o base_a malefactor_n that_o st._n peter_n and_o st._n andrew_n be_v crucify_v st._n james_n the_o just_a stone_v and_o his_o brain_n knock_v out_o with_o a_o club_n st._n bartholomew_n flay_v alive_a that_o not_o one_o of_o the_o apostle_n can_v be_v name_v who_o do_v not_o end_v his_o life_n by_o a_o unnatural_a death_n except_o only_o st._n john_n who_o escape_v it_o by_o miracle_n for_o he_o be_v cast_v into_o a_o cauldron_n of_o boil_a oil._n that_o the_o first_o bishop_n their_o successor_n follow_v they_o in_o the_o like_o tragical_a death_n that_o st._n clemens_n bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v throw_v into_o the_o bottom_n of_o the_o sea_n st._n simeon_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n crucify_v st._n ignatius_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n expose_v to_o the_o lion_n st._n polycarp_n bishop_n of_o smyrna_n burn_v at_o a_o stake_n yea_o that_o the_o christian_n for_o the_o most_o part_n for_o three_o hundred_o year_n together_o meet_v with_o the_o most_o horrid_a death_n one_o be_v tear_v in_o piece_n by_o wild_a beast_n another_o be_v roast_v on_o a_o spit_n another_o be_v broil_v on_o a_o gridiron_n another_o have_v his_o flesh_n scrape_v off_o to_o the_o bone_n with_o sharp_a shell_n and_o salt_n and_o vinegar_n pour_v into_o his_o green_a wound_n and_o for_o one_o of_o their_o bloody_a persecutor_n a_o hundred_o christian_n may_v be_v find_v who_o die_v a_o terrible_a death_n these_o be_v the_o happy_a end_n that_o the_o first_o and_o best_a christian_n be_v bless_v with_o happy_a indeed_o if_o we_o respect_v the_o cause_n for_o which_o they_o die_v and_o the_o bless_a reward_n they_o be_v crown_v with_o but_o none_o ever_o more_o unhappy_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world._n as_o they_o have_v be_v of_o all_o man_n the_o most_o miserable_a have_v they_o have_v hope_n in_o this_o life_n only_o so_o if_o this_o note_n be_v true_a their_o hope_n can_v not_o have_v reach_v beyond_o it_o 3._o nor_o be_v this_o note_n more_o repugnant_a to_o scripture_n and_o experience_n than_o it_o be_v to_o reason_n one_o prime_n fundamental_a principle_n of_o reason_n be_v that_o contradiction_n can_v be_v true_a or_o that_o the_o same_o thing_n can_v be_v and_o not_o be_v this_o we_o be_v as_o sure_a of_o as_o that_o we_o ourselves_o be_v or_o that_o any_o thing_n else_o be_v whatsoever_o therefore_o it_o be_v from_o whence_o it_o plain_o follow_v that_o contradiction_n may_v be_v true_a we_o be_v as_o sure_o that_o it_o be_v false_a and_o therefore_o that_o the_o note_v now_o under_o consideration_n be_v so_o because_o if_o it_o be_v true_a the_o most_o palpable_a contradiction_n will_v be_v true_a also_o of_o those_o many_o that_o offer_v themselves_o i_o shall_v mention_v a_o few_o as_o 1._o that_o that_o be_v a_o false_a church_n which_o be_v most_o certain_o the_o true_a church_n for_o if_o the_o burn_a alive_a of_o valens_n the_o arian_n emperor_n be_v a_o certain_a sign_n that_o the_o arian_n faith_n be_v false_a the_o burn_a alive_a of_o many_o of_o the_o first_o christian_n be_v as_o certain_a a_o note_n that_o the_o primitive_a faith_n be_v false_a if_o it_o follow_v that_o manichaeus_n be_v a_o damnable_a heretic_n because_o he_o be_v flay_v alive_a must_v we_o not_o conclude_v that_o st._n bartholomew_n be_v as_o bad_a and_o by_o consequence_n all_o the_o holy_a apostle_n because_o he_o suffer_v the_o same_o kind_n of_o death_n 2._o that_o a_o church_n remain_v the_o same_o without_o any_o change_n in_o doctrine_n worship_n or_o discipline_n may_v be_v to_o day_n a_o false_a church_n to_o morrow_n the_o only_a true_a church_n so_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n be_v a_o false_a one_o when_o the_o high_a priest_n fall_v backward_o and_o break_v his_o neck_n within_o a_o few_o day_n after_o when_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v against_o the_o philistine_n and_o they_o be_v smite_v with_o a_o foul_a disease_n of_o which_o they_o miserable_o die_v it_o be_v a_o true_a church_n again_o thus_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o year_n 1656_o when_o a_o dreadful_a pestilence_n for_o that_o be_v one_o of_o bellarmin_n unhappy_a end_n sweep_v away_o three_o hundred_o thousand_o in_o three_o month_n time_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n and_o make_v great_a havoc_n at_o rome_n and_o genoa_n 426._o genoa_n athanas_n kircheri_fw-la scrutin_n physico-med_n contag_n luis_n quae_fw-la dicitur_fw-la pestis_fw-la p._n 426._o be_v a_o false_a church_n but_o in_o the_o year_n 1665_o when_o the_o like_a dreadful_a pestilence_n rage_v in_o london_n it_o become_v a_o true_a church_n again_o yea_o 3._o that_o there_o be_v no_o one_o church_n in_o the_o world_n but_o by_o this_o note_n it_o may_v be_v and_o it_o may_v not_o be_v the_o true_a church_n because_o the_o opposer_n and_o the_o defender_n of_o any_o one_o and_o the_o same_o church_n may_v have_v both_o of_o they_o unhappy_a and_o both_o of_o they_o happy_a ends._n now_o as_o the_o opposer_n have_v unhappy_a end_n it_o be_v a_o true_a church_n as_o the_o defender_n have_v unhappy_a end_v it_o be_v by_o the_o four_o thing_n premise_v a_o false_a one_o again_o as_o the_o opposer_n have_v a_o happy_a end_n it_o be_v a_o false_a church_n as_o the_o defender_n have_v
the_o holy_a war_n and_o there_o he_o take_v notice_n how_o the_o christian_n be_v then_o about_o antioch_n with_o a_o small_a number_n and_o those_o in_o great_a despair_n and_o a_o very_a languish_a condition_n for_o want_n of_o necessary_a provision_n and_o the_o enemy_n at_o hand_n with_o a_o potent_a numerous_a army_n and_o when_o they_o be_v in_o this_o distress_n it_o be_v at_o length_n seasonable_o reveal_v to_o some_o body_n where_o the_o holy_a lance_n be_v which_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o field_n in_o the_o nick_n of_o time_n and_o carry_v before_o the_o soldier_n and_o three_o holy_a man_n appear_v in_o the_o cloud_n fight_v for_o they_o and_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o unexpected_o get_v a_o entire_a victory_n with_o the_o slaughter_n of_o a_o hundred_o thousand_o of_o the_o turk_n i_o will_v not_o question_v the_o truth_n of_o any_o part_n of_o the_o story_n but_o let_v any_o man_n consider_v the_o various_a success_n of_o that_o war_n and_o that_o it_o be_v conclude_v to_o the_o advantage_n of_o the_o infidel_n who_o remain_v master_n of_o all_o at_o last_o after_o so_o much_o blood_n and_o treasure_n expend_v and_o so_o many_o of_o the_o brave_a spirit_n of_o europe_n throw_v away_o upon_o those_o tedious_a and_o fruitless_a expedition_n and_o he_o will_v be_v apt_a to_o suspect_v that_o here_o the_o cardinal_n do_v manifest_o prevaricate_v and_o that_o he_o have_v a_o real_a design_n to_o betray_v his_o own_o church_n and_o give_v up_o the_o cause_n to_o mahomet_n after_o this_o he_o boast_v of_o a_o notable_a victory_n over_o the_o albigenses_n where_o a_o hundred_o thousand_o of_o the_o heretic_n be_v total_o rout_v by_o his_o catholic_n that_o be_v not_o the_o ten_o part_n of_o their_o number_n it_o be_v true_a the_o history_n of_o those_o time_n do_v general_o mention_v a_o very_a great_a overthrow_n give_v those_o poor_a people_n in_o a_o battle_n by_o a_o very_a inconsiderable_a handful_n of_o man_n under_o the_o command_n or_o simon_n mountfort_n and_o that_o peter_n king_n of_o arragon_n who_o come_v to_o their_o assistance_n be_v slay_v on_o the_o place_n and_o raymond_n earl_n of_o thoulouse_n force_v to_o fly_v and_o upon_o this_o occasion_n to_o strengthen_v the_o cardinal_n argument_n as_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a i_o think_v it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o call_v to_o mind_v some_o other_o of_o their_o glorious_a victory_n over_o these_o albigenses_n these_o we_o must_v know_v be_v a_o sort_n of_o heretic_n that_o be_v spread_v far_o and_o near_o and_o have_v a_o long_a time_n infect_v the_o church_n etc._n see_v usher_n de_fw-fr christ_n eccl._n success_n &_o scat._n cap._n 10._o sect._n 23_o 24._o etc._n etc._n some_o say_v they_o have_v continue_v ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n pope_n innocent_a the_o three_o very_o desirous_a to_o find_v a_o remedy_n for_o this_o inveterate_a evil_n appoint_v divers_a eminent_a preacher_n to_o go_v into_o the_o part_n where_o they_o be_v think_v to_o be_v the_o most_o numerous_a and_o teach_v nothing_o there_o but_o the_o pure_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o endeavour_v by_o this_o mean_n to_o convince_v they_o of_o their_o suppose_a error_n but_o this_o way_n not_o succeed_v the_o heretic_n remain_v obstinate_a still_o notwithstanding_o the_o diligence_n of_o the_o missionary_n he_o bethink_v himself_o of_o a_o more_o effectual_a expedient_a since_o persuasion_n will_v not_o prevail_v he_o be_v resolve_v to_o try_v whether_o terror_n and_o force_n may_v not_o have_v a_o great_a power_n of_o conviction_n than_o argument_n therefore_o he_o publish_v a_o crusado_n against_o the_o heretic_n as_o have_v be_v former_o do_v against_o the_o infidel_n in_o the_o east_n and_o set_v forth_o his_o bull_n of_o plenary_a indulgence_n to_o all_o that_o shall_v engage_v in_o this_o sacred_a militia_n and_o make_v they_o as_o sure_o of_o heaven_n as_o those_o be_v that_o shall_v be_v send_v on_o his_o errand_n to_o the_o holy_a land._n upon_o this_o extraordinary_a encouragement_n great_a multitude_n flock_v together_o from_o all_o part_n and_o full_a of_o zeal_n and_o rage_n they_o march_v on_o and_o perform_v many_o notable_a exploit_n to_o the_o eternal_a honour_n of_o themselves_o and_o he_o that_o put_v they_o on_o that_o pious_a work._n in_o one_o city_n they_o put_v threescore_o thousand_o to_o the_o sword_n spare_v neither_o sex_n nor_o age._n and_o when_o the_o tender-hearted_a soldier_n find_v there_o be_v some_o catholic_n in_o the_o place_n they_o desire_v to_o know_v whether_o these_o may_v not_o be_v admit_v to_o quarter_n the_o pope_n legate_n that_o be_v attend_v the_o action_n command_v they_o to_o make_v no_o distinction_n for_o fear_v a_o heretic_n may_v escape_v under_o that_o pretence_n and_o he_o excuse_v the_o severity_n of_o the_o order_n with_o a_o scripture_n expression_n the_o lord_n know_v who_o be_v his._n this_o beginning_n be_v enough_o to_o strike_v terror_n into_o all_o that_o hear_v it_o and_o then_o they_o go_v on_o valiant_o still_o do_v great_a execution_n wherever_o they_o come_v whenever_o any_o town_n or_o castle_n be_v surrender_v it_o be_v always_o upon_o these_o article_n they_o that_o will_v be_v convert_v have_v their_o life_n they_o that_o refuse_v be_v hang_v or_o burn_v after_o they_o have_v proceed_v a_o while_n in_o this_o manner_n simon_n mountfort_n a_o stout_a zealot_n be_v by_o common_a consent_n choose_v general_n of_o the_o pilgrim_n for_o so_o they_o be_v call_v and_o appoint_a commander_n in_o chief_a for_o this_o new_a kind_n of_o holy_a war_n with_o a_o promise_n of_o the_o government_n of_o what_o have_v already_o be_v or_o shall_v happen_v hereafter_o to_o be_v take_v from_o the_o heretic_n he_o arm_v with_o a_o sufficient_a power_n quick_o force_v raimund_n of_o tholouse_n out_o of_o his_o dominion_n the_o poor_a eject_v prince_n fly_v to_o the_o great_a lateran_n council_n for_o relief_n they_o as_o if_o the_o question_n have_v be_v about_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n suffer_v the_o debate_n to_o come_v before_o they_o and_o deprive_v raimund_n constitute_v simon_n e._n of_o tholouse_n raimund_n hereupon_o retire_v into_o spain_n simon_n be_v new_o subject_n sudden_o revolt_v and_o force_v he_o to_o go_v himself_o and_o send_v his_o wife_n to_o several_a court_n to_o beg_v such_o supply_n as_o may_v be_v sufficient_a to_o reduce_v they_o to_o obedience_n but_o before_o that_o can_v be_v do_v he_o be_v crush_v to_o piece_n with_o a_o great_a stone_n out_o of_o a_o engine_n as_o he_o lie_v before_o tholouse_n soon_o after_o his_o young_a son_n guy_n be_v likewise_o slay_v at_o another_o town_n almaric_n the_o elder_a and_o heir_n to_o his_o father_n high_o enrage_v with_o these_o misfortune_n that_o fall_v so_o thick_a upon_o his_o family_n swear_v desperate_o that_o he_o will_v never_o remove_v the_o siege_n till_o he_o be_v master_n of_o the_o place_n but_o notwithstanding_o this_o insolent_a bravado_n he_o be_v constrain_v to_o go_v away_o in_o a_o disgrace_n aggravate_v with_o the_o gild_n of_o a_o presumptuous_a foolish_a oath_n before_o this_o raimund_n be_v return_v and_o enter_v again_o upon_o his_o legal_a inheritance_n and_o die_v at_o last_o in_o possession_n of_o it_o and_o leave_v the_o sucession_n to_o his_o son_n when_o almaric_n be_v fain_o to_o wander_v up_o and_o down_o the_o world_n earnest_o entreat_v all_o that_o please_v to_o pity_v his_o condition_n to_o afford_v he_o some_o succour_n that_o he_o may_v be_v enable_v to_o endeavour_v the_o recovery_n of_o what_o have_v be_v late_o usurp_v by_o his_o father_n and_o now_o upon_o a_o review_n of_o the_o success_n on_o both_o side_n thus_o far_o the_o heretic_n seem_v clear_o to_o have_v the_o advantage_n and_o for_o what_o follow_v after_o this_o it_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o the_o particular_a care_n the_o divine_a providence_n have_v always_o have_v in_o the_o preservation_n of_o those_o distress_a albigenses_n that_o can_v never_o be_v destroy_v by_o the_o many_o potent_a combination_n that_o have_v be_v make_v against_o they_o and_o the_o violent_a persecution_n they_o have_v endure_v within_o these_o last_o five_o hundred_o year_n but_o in_o spite_n of_o all_o the_o malice_n of_o their_o enemy_n the_o remain_v of_o they_o at_o this_o day_n be_v enough_o to_o exercise_v the_o valour_n of_o another_o mountfort_n if_o any_o unhappy_a age_n shall_v chance_v to_o produce_v one_o for_o his_o catholic_n victory_n in_o switzerland_n and_o the_o low-countries_n if_o the_o cardinal_n have_v be_v please_v to_o acquaint_v we_o what_o they_o be_v perhaps_o they_o may_v be_v easy_o balance_v however_o for_o aught_o i_o can_v learn_v the_o protestant_a canton_n be_v in_o as_o good_a condition_n as_o the_o other_o i_o be_o sure_a the_o confederate_a province_n of_o the_o netherlands_o be_v grow_v a_o very_a rich_a and_o
from_o be_v dazzle_v at_o the_o sight_n that_o they_o be_v no_o more_o affect_v than_o if_o i_o have_v look_v on_o a_o piece_n of_o green_a silk_n but_o i_o doubt_v he_o will_v censure_v they_o very_o hardly_o for_o it_o and_o think_v they_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o malignant_a cavaleerish_v eye_n i_o can_v help_v that_o but_o whatever_o eye_n they_o be_v since_o i_o have_v be_v able_a to_o hold_v they_o open_v so_o long_o against_o the_o glare_a imaginary_a splendour_n of_o these_o these_o triumphant_a note_n i_o will_v venture_v to_o draw_v out_o the_o whole_a train_n once_o more_o and_o give_v a_o little_a remark_n upon_o every_o one_o of_o they_o as_o they_o pass_v by_o 1._o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n this_o be_v a_o note_n which_o may_v be_v easy_o usurp_v by_o every_o bold_a pretender_n but_o till_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o it_o be_v join_v with_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n the_o name_n alone_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o empty_a and_o insignificant_a sound_n 2._o antiquity_n i_o shall_v not_o here_o mention_v the_o antiquity_n of_o some_o error_n nor_o that_o there_o be_v many_o church_n in_o the_o world_n before_o there_o be_v any_o at_o rome_n but_o will_v free_o confess_v that_o that_o have_v be_v ancient_a enough_o if_o it_o have_v preserve_v that_o doctrine_n in_o its_o purity_n which_o it_o receive_v at_o the_o first_o but_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o the_o addition_n she_o have_v make_v unto_o that_o concern_v infallibility_n image_n purgatory_n and_o the_o like_a can_v be_v pretend_v to_o be_v of_o ancient_n and_o apostolical_a tradition_n nay_o many_o of_o their_o present_a tenant_n be_v never_o declare_v necessary_a till_o the_o last_o age_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o it_o be_v now_o constitute_v can_v be_v esteem_v no_o old_a than_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n that_o be_v about_o forty_o year_n young_a than_o the_o reformation_n 3._o duration_n by_o this_o the_o cardinal_n will_v persuade_v we_o that_o his_o true_a church_n have_v be_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o shall_v continue_v to_o the_o end_n of_o christianity_n the_o first_o we_o deny_v the_o second_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v till_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n we_o be_v sure_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v change_v already_o from_o what_o it_o be_v and_o we_o hope_v and_o believe_v that_o it_o will_v be_v change_v again_o from_o what_o it_o be_v and_o then_o what_o will_v become_v of_o the_o duration_n they_o boast_v of_o if_o they_o shall_v ever_o reform_v themselves_o from_o those_o error_n and_o abuse_n which_o have_v creep_v in_o among_o they_o as_o have_v be_v often_o attempt_v and_o a_o long_a time_n most_o earnest_o desire_v by_o many_o of_o the_o best_a and_o most_o impartial_a of_o their_o own_o communion_n so_o that_o grant_v this_o to_o be_v a_o note_n it_o will_v make_v against_o they_o both_o way_n for_o what_o be_v past_a we_o know_v what_o alteration_n have_v be_v make_v by_o they_o and_o they_o can_v never_o be_v secure_v against_o other_o that_o may_v happen_v hereafter_o 4._o amplitude_n or_o multitude_n and_o variety_n of_o believer_n this_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v make_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o time_n be_v once_o that_o christ_n flock_n be_v a_o little_a flock_n 1.15_o act_n 1.15_o and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n together_o be_v but_o about_o a_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o and_o afterward_o the_o arrian_n heresy_n have_v almost_o overspread_v the_o face_n of_o christendom_n insomuch_o that_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v think_v to_o be_v against_o athanasius_n and_o athanasius_n against_o the_o whole_a world._n or_o shall_v we_o let_v it_o pass_v for_o a_o note_n they_o can_v gain_v but_o little_a by_o it_o for_o they_o be_v infinite_o exceed_v in_o multitude_n not_o only_o by_o heathen_n and_o mahometan_n but_o by_o christian_n of_o other_o denomination_n 5._o succession_n of_o bishop_n how_o far_o this_o may_v be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n i_o need_v not_o dispute_v but_o the_o uninterrupted_a succession_n they_o of_o rome_n be_v wont_v to_o glory_n in_o be_v manifest_o false_a for_o beside_o the_o long_a vacance_n that_o have_v sometime_o happen_v and_o the_o many_o schism_n they_o have_v have_v when_o two_o or_o more_o have_v pretend_v to_o the_o papacy_n and_o no_o man_n can_v determine_v who_o have_v the_o right_n which_o must_v make_v it_o dubious_a the_o confess_v heretic_n that_o have_v possess_v themselves_o of_o the_o infallible_a chair_n must_v quite_o cut_v off_o at_o least_o interrupt_v the_o succession_n or_o if_o they_o have_v it_o notwithstanding_o this_o or_o any_o other_o objection_n that_o may_v be_v make_v we_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n can_v plead_v the_o same_o 6._o agreement_n in_o doctrine_n with_o the_o primitive_a church_n this_o be_v a_o good_a note_n indeed_o if_o they_o mean_v the_o true_o primitive_a church_n for_o that_o agree_v with_o the_o scripture_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o then_o i_o hope_v they_o will_v not_o have_v the_o confidence_n to_o affirm_v that_o their_o prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n their_o half-communion_n their_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n which_o they_o now_o receive_v be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o practice_n and_o belief_n of_o that_o primitive_a church_n 7._o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o the_o head._n of_o this_o they_o be_v continual_o make_v their_o brag_v but_o the_o many_o and_o violent_a contention_n that_o have_v often_o be_v betwixt_o the_o several_a pretender_n to_o the_o papal_a dignity_n and_o the_o endless_a feud_n and_o animosity_n that_o be_v keep_v up_o among_o they_o about_o many_o controvert_v point_n do_v sufficient_o declare_v that_o their_o church_n have_v be_v rend_v and_o tear_v with_o faction_n and_o intestine_a division_n as_o much_o as_o any_o other_o society_n or_o if_o they_o be_v as_o firm_o unite_v as_o they_o pretend_v it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o other_o combination_n of_o man_n have_v be_v in_o know_v and_o wicked_a error_n 8._o sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n for_o they_o general_o assert_v as_o the_o cardinal_n do_v here_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n maintain_v nothing_o that_o be_v false_a either_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o manner_n if_o they_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v this_o there_o may_v be_v some_o reason_n indeed_o that_o their_o church_n shall_v be_v esteem_v the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n as_o she_o have_v be_v wont_a of_o late_a to_o style_v herself_o but_o since_o the_o power_n of_o depose_v prince_n have_v be_v open_o assume_v and_o frequent_o practise_v and_o never_o yet_o condemn_v by_o any_o either_o pope_n or_o council_n since_o the_o doctrine_n of_o aequivocation_n and_o many_o other_o absurd_a and_o impious_a opinion_n be_v teach_v by_o their_o casuist_n and_o make_v use_v of_o by_o their_o confessor_n in_o direct_v the_o conscience_n of_o their_o penitent_n and_o since_o these_o and_o many_o more_o very_a dangerous_a error_n do_v not_o only_o escape_v without_o a_o censure_n but_o be_v approve_v of_o and_o encourage_v by_o their_o governor_n i_o do_v not_o see_v how_o they_o and_o their_o church_n can_v possible_o be_v excuse_v from_o the_o gild_n of_o they_o 9_o the_o efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n here_o we_o be_v tell_v of_o the_o wonderful_a success_n they_o have_v have_v in_o the_o propagation_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o the_o conversion_n that_o have_v be_v make_v of_o whole_a nation_n and_o suppose_v it_o be_v as_o they_o say_v yet_o heresy_n and_o infidelity_n have_v often_o have_v as_o great_a and_o swift_a a_o progress_n in_o the_o world_n as_o any_o that_o their_o doctrine_n can_v boast_v of_o and_o consider_v the_o pravity_n and_o corruption_n of_o human_a nature_n it_o be_v not_o strange_a that_o the_o most_o gross_a and_o pernicious_a error_n shall_v be_v more_o ready_o receive_v and_o spread_v themselves_o fast_o than_o the_o most_o divine_a and_o sacred_a truth_n 10._o holiness_n of_o life_n this_o be_v indeed_o the_o most_o real_a commendation_n of_o a_o christian_a and_o i_o will_v not_o go_v about_o to_o rob_v they_o of_o the_o glory_n of_o it_o but_o than_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o meet_v philosopher_n and_o some_o of_o the_o ancient_n and_o many_o of_o those_o who_o they_o account_v modern_a heretic_n have_v be_v of_o a_o very_a strict_a and_o unblamable_a conversation_n and_o divers_a of_o their_o pope_n and_o other_o ecclesiastic_n of_o the_o great_a eminency_n of_o place_n have_v be_v very_o infamous_a for_o all_o sort_n of_o wickedness_n and_o debauchery_n and_o their_o very_a religious_a order_n have_v be_v often_o complain_v of_o for_o the_o neglect_n of_o their_o discipline_n and_o looseness_n of_o their_o life_n as_o be_v abundant_o testify_v by_o their_o
one_o church_n which_o we_o must_v own_v for_o the_o only_a catholic_n church_n and_o reject_v all_o other_o church_n as_o heretical_a or_o schismatical_a or_o uncatholick_a church_n who_o refuse_v obedience_n and_o subjection_n to_o this_o one_o catholic_n church_n for_o if_o this_o be_v not_o the_o intent_n of_o it_o what_o will_v all_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n signify_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a true_a catholic_n church_n and_o if_o they_o do_v not_o prove_v this_o the_o cardinal_n have_v lose_v his_o labour_n for_o though_o the_o note_n he_o assign_v be_v the_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n yet_o they_o may_v and_o must_v belong_v to_o all_o other_o true_a church_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n unless_o he_o can_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o true_a church_n or_o but_o one_o church_n which_o be_v the_o mistress_n of_o all_o other_o church_n and_o the_o only_a principle_n and_o centre_n of_o catholic_n unity_n and_o this_o aught_o to_o have_v be_v prove_v first_o before_o he_o have_v think_v of_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n so_o that_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n to_o be_v prove_v here_o before_o we_o be_v ready_a for_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n they_o must_v first_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n for_o though_o we_o all_o grant_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o catholic_n church_n yet_o we_o say_v there_o may_v be_v and_o hope_v nay_o more_o than_o so_o know_v that_o there_o be_v many_o true_a church_n which_o make_v up_o the_o catholic_n church_n yet_o before_o the_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n can_v do_v any_o service_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o must_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n and_o than_o it_o will_v signify_v something_o to_o prove_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v that_o true_a church_n they_o must_v prove_v also_o that_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v not_o signify_v all_o the_o particular_a true_a church_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n but_o some_o one_o church_n which_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o catholic_n unity_n which_o all_o other_o church_n be_v bind_v to_o submit_v to_o and_o communicate_v with_o if_o they_o will_v be_v member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o though_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n be_v in_o subjection_n to_o that_o church_n yet_o they_o receive_v their_o catholicism_n from_o their_o communion_n with_o that_o church_n and_o therefore_o that_o only_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n it_o be_v not_o mere_o the_o communion_n of_o all_o church_n together_o which_o make_v the_o catholic_n church_n but_o it_o be_v the_o subjection_n of_o all_o church_n to_o that_o one_o catholic_n church_n which_o make_v they_o catholic_n so_o that_o they_o must_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v one_o particular_a church_n which_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n that_o be_v that_o a_o part_n be_v the_o whole_a that_o one_o particular_a church_n be_v all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n for_o so_o the_o catholic_n church_n signify_v in_o ancient_a writer_n this_o be_v so_o absurd_a that_o some_o of_o our_o modern_a advocate_n for_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o rome_n tell_v we_o that_o they_o do_v not_o mean_v the_o particular_a diocese_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o all_o those_o church_n which_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o suppose_v this_o yet_o it_o be_v only_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o make_v all_o the_o other_o church_n catholic_n and_o therefore_o she_o only_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n and_o i_o will_v present_o make_v they_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v so_o for_o let_v we_o suppose_v that_o no_o other_o church_n shall_v submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n understand_v the_o particular_a diocese_n of_o rome_n will_v she_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n or_o not_o if_o notwithstanding_o this_o she_o will_v be_v the_o catholic_n church_n than_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o they_o make_v the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n the_o catholic_n church_n if_o she_o will_v not_o than_o i_o can_v see_v how_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o catholic_n church_n these_o thing_n i_o say_v aught_o to_o have_v be_v prove_v before_o the_o cardinal_n have_v give_v we_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n for_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a thing_n to_o prove_v by_o note_n that_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a catholic_n church_n till_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o a_o particular_a church_n may_v be_v the_o catholic_n church_n or_o that_o there_o be_v one_o particular_a church_n which_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n this_o he_o know_v we_o all_o deny_v and_o it_o be_v a_o ridiculous_a thing_n to_o think_v to_o convince_v we_o by_o note_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o particular_a catholic_n church_n when_o we_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o such_o church_n and_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v a_o contradiction_n to_o own_v it_o as_o great_a a_o contradiction_n as_o it_o be_v to_o say_v that_o a_o particular_a church_n be_v the_o universal_a church_n 4thly_a but_o when_o i_o consider_v the_o far_a design_n of_o these_o note-makers_n to_o find_v out_o such_o a_o church_n on_o who_o authority_n we_o must_v rely_v for_o the_o whole_a christian_a faith_n even_o for_o the_o holy_a scripture_n themselves_o it_o make_v i_o now_o admire_v that_o they_o shall_v think_v this_o can_v be_v do_v by_o some_o note_n of_o a_o church_n especial_o by_o such_o note_n as_o the_o cardinal_n give_v we_o for_o suppose_v he_o have_v give_v we_o the_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n which_o be_v the_o utmost_a he_o can_v pretend_v to_o before_o we_o can_v hence_o conclude_v that_o this_o church_n be_v the_o infallible_a guide_n and_o uncontrollable_a judge_n of_o controversy_n we_o must_v be_v satisfy_v that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v infallible_a this_o indeed_o bellarmin_n attempt_v to_o prove_v in_o his_o three_o book_n of_o the_o church_n and_o it_o be_v not_o my_o concern_v at_o present_a to_o inquire_v how_o he_o prove_v it_o but_o i_o be_o sure_a this_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v but_o by_o scripture_n for_o unless_o christ_n have_v bestow_v infallibility_n on_o the_o church_n i_o know_v not_o how_o we_o can_v prove_v she_o have_v it_o and_o whether_o christ_n have_v do_v it_o or_o not_o can_v never_o be_v know_v but_o by_o the_o scripture_n so_o that_o a_o man_n must_v believe_v the_o scripture_n and_o use_v his_o own_o judgement_n to_o understand_v they_o before_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o he_o that_o there_o be_v a_o infallible_a church_n and_o therefore_o those_o who_o resolve_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o scripture_n into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n can_v without_o great_a impudence_n urge_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o prove_v the_o church_n infallibility_n and_o yet_o thus_o they_o all_o do_v nay_o prove_v their_o very_a note_n of_o the_o church_n from_o scripture_n as_o the_o cardinal_n do_v and_o think_v this_o be_v no_o circle_n neither_o because_o we_o heretic_n believe_v the_o scripture_n without_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o church_n and_o therefore_o be_v willing_a to_o dispute_v with_o they_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n but_o this_o be_v a_o fault_n on_o our_o side_n and_o when_o we_o dispute_v with_o they_o whatever_o we_o do_v at_o other_o time_n we_o shall_v not_o believe_v the_o scripture_n till_o they_o have_v prove_v they_o to_o we_o their_o way_n by_o the_o authority_n or_o their_o church_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v quick_o see_v what_o bless_a work_n they_o will_v make_v of_o it_o how_o they_o will_v prove_v their_o church_n infallibility_n and_o what_o fine_a note_n we_o shall_v have_v of_o a_o church_n when_o we_o have_v reject_v all_o their_o scripture-proof_n as_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v till_o they_o have_v first_o satisfy_v we_o that_o they_o be_v the_o only_a true_a infallible_a church_n upon_o who_o authority_n we_o must_v believe_v the_o scripture_n and_o every_o thing_n else_o i_o confess_v i_o will_v glad_o hear_v what_o note_n they_o will_v give_v a_o pagan_a to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a infallible_a church_n by_o it_o be_v certain_o a_o most_o senseless_a thing_n to_o resolve_v all_o our_o faith_n into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n as_o if_o the_o church_n be_v the_o first_o object_n or_o our_o faith_n in_o religion_n whereas_o it_o be_v demonstrable_a that_o we_o must_v know_v and_o believe_v most_o of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n before_o we_o can_v know_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o church_n or_o not_o the_o order_n observe_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n be_v a_o plain_a evidence_n